LIBRARY OF CONGRESS QDDD50ti53b7 V'-^^c* V^^v %-'f.^i\o^ ". ^^ '-Sim: ^-^^ -AXIL^o ^^ 4^ *♦ ^^■^t.. • :i>% .%^^ Richard III. SHAKESPEARE'S TRAGEDY OF King Richard the Third EDITED, WITH NOTES, BY WILLIAM J. ROLFE, Litt.D., FORMERLY HEAD MASTER OF THE HIGH SCHOOL, CAMBRIDGE, MASS. ILLUSTRATED NEW YORK . : • CINCINNATI • : • CHICAGO AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY LIBR«RV of CONGRESS Two CoDies Received JUL 11 1904 Cooyrlsrht Entry CLASS ^ XXc. No. ^^q ^ / COPY B "V K ^^ Copyright, 1904, by WILLIAM J. ROLFE. RICH. III. W. P. I PREFACE This play, which I first edited in 1884, is now revised on the same general plan as the Merchant of Venice and the other plays that have preceded it. I have retained a somewhat larger proportion of the notes on textual variations than in the earlier volumes, partly to give teachers and students some idea of their perplexing character (see pages 10-12 below), and partly to explain the many variations in the standard modern texts. These are mainly due to the many con- flicting theories concerning the history and the relative authority of the folio and quarto texts. For instance, the Cambridge editors and certain others believe that the quarto gives us the original text, "errors of pen and press apart," while the folio contains insertions and alterations mostly from another hand ; others re- gard the variations in the folio as substantially the result of Shakespeare's own revision of his orjginal text, which we have in a more or less corrupt form in the quartos ; and the editors make up their own texts according to the theory — whether it be one of these or some other — which they adopt. For myself, as I have said (page 1 1 below), I believe that the weight of authority is on the side of the folio, and I therefore follow it unless the quarto appears clearly to give the better reading. CONTENTS PAGE Introduction to King Richard the Third ... 9 The History of the Play ....... 9 The Sources of the Plot 16 General Comments on the Play . . . . • ^^ King Richard the Third 37 Act I . . 39 Act II 83 Act III 102 Act IV . 138 Act V .176 Notes : 199 Appendix : "The True Tragedie of Richard the Third " . . • 311 The Politics of the Play 315 The Time-Analysis of the Play . . . . .318 The Historic Dates of the Play 320 List of Characters in the Play ...... 321 Index of Words and Phrases Explained , . . 325 7 The Bloody Tower Crosby House INTRODUCTION TO KING RICHARD THE THIRD The History of the Play The earliest known edition of the play is a quarto printed in 1597, with the following title-page: — The Tragedy of | King Richard the third. | Contain- ing, I His treacherous Plots against his brother Clar- ence : I the pittiefull murther of his innocent nephewes : | his tyrannicall vsurpation : with the whole course | of his detested Hfe, and most deserued death. | As it hath beene 9 lo King Richard the Third lately Acted by the Right honourable the Lord Cham- ber- I laine his seruants. | at london | Printed by Val- entine Sims, for Andrew Wise, | dwelling in Paules Chuch-yard, at the | Signe of the Angell. | 1597. The play had been entered on the Stationers' Registers on the 20th of October, 1597, by Wise, under the title of " The Tragedie of Kinge Richard the Third, with the death of the Duke of Clarence." A second quarto edition was published the following year, with the addition of ^^ By Wilham Shake-speare " on the title-page ; in other respects it is a reprint of the first. Other quarto editions appeared in 1602, 1605, 161 2, and 1622. All four are said to be ''newly aug- mented," but they contain nothing that is not found in the 2d quarto, unless it be additional errors of the press. After the publication of the folio a seventh quarto edi- tion was printed in 1629, not from the folio text, but from that of the quarto of 1622. An eighth quarto, a reprint of the seventh, appeared in 1634. The text of the play in the ist foho differs materially from that of the quartos. Besides many little changes in expression, it contains several passages — one of more than fifty lines — not found in the earlier texts ; while, on the other hand, it omits sundry lines — in some cases essential to the context — given in the quartos. The play is, moreover, one of the worst printed in the folio, and the quartos often help us in correcting the typographical errors. Which is on the whole the better text, and what is the relation of the one to the other, are questions which Introduction 11 have been much disputed, but probably will never be satisfactorily settled. The Cambridge editors remark : "The respective origin and authority of the ist quarto and ist folio texts of Richard III. is perhaps the most difficult question which presents itself to an editor of Shakespeare. In the case of most of the plays a brief survey leads him to form a definite judgment ; in this, the most attentive examination scarcely enables him to propose with confidence a hypothetical conclusion." Staunton says : " The diversity has proved, and will con- tinue to prove, a source of incalculable trouble and per- petual dispute to the editors, since, although it is admitted by every one properly qualified to judge, that a reason- ably perfect text can only be formed from the two ver- sions, there will always be a conflict of opinions regarding some of the readings." Furnivall considers " the making of the best text" of the play "the hardest puzzle in Shakspere-editing." ^ In the present edition I have followed the folio, except where the quarto has clearly the better reading. Accord- ing to Mr. Spedding, there are about 1300 variations in the two texts. In act i., out of 1062 lines in the quarto, " a httle more than 300 " have been altered in the folio ; in act ii., 161 lines out of 414; in act iii., 411 out of 1028; in act iv., 321 out of 848; and in act v., which appears to have been revised less minutely, 89 out of 458. 1 For a very full discussion of the relations of the two texts, see the papers by Spedding and Peckersgill in the Transactions of the New Shakspere Society, 1875-76, pp. 1-124. 12 King Richard the Third The folio also contains 193 lines (inserted in 45 dif- ferent places) which are not in the quarto ; while, on the other hand, the quarto has a number of lines, and in one instance a passage of 17 lines, omitted in the folio. The more important of these variations are men- tioned in the Notes, with a sufficient number of the others to show how trivial they are. The difference is often too slight to hang an argument upon ; wherefore the critics, as their wont is, have disputed over it all the more vehemently. As to the date of the play, the critics generally agree that it was written in 1592 or 1593, or early in 1594. The internal evidence is in favour of as early a date as 1594. Stokes {^Chronological Order of Shakespeare's Flays) remarks : " There are many signs of comparatively early work : for instance the prologue-like speech with which the play opens ; ' the scenes where the trilogy of the common lamentation of the women (ii, 2 and iv. i) alter- nates like a chorus, dramatic truth being sacrificed to the lyric or epic form, and to conceits in the style of the pastoral Italian poetry ' (Gervinus) ; the overstraining of many of the characters ; and the analysis of motive some- times exhibited." James Russell Lowell, in a lecture at Chicago, Febru- ary 2 2d, 1887, expressed the opinion that the play was merely revised by Shakespeare. "It appears to me," he said, "that an examination of Richard III. plainly indicates that it is a play which Shakespeare adapted to the stage, making additions, sometimes longer and some- Introduction 13 times shorter ; and toward the end he either grew weary of his work or was pressed for time, and left the older author, whoever he was, pretty much to himself." The procession of ghosts, Lowell says, always struck him " as ludicrous and odd rather than impressive." This does not differ essentially from the decision to which Mr. Fleay had come in his Chronicle History of Shakespeare, published in 1886. He beheves that the earlier play was Marlowe's, partly written in 1593, but left unfinished at his death, and completed and altered by Shakespeare in 1594. Even so cautious and conservative a critic as Halliwell- Phillipps recognizes indications of earlier work in the play. After referring to the historical sources of the plot in More and Holinshed, he adds : " There are also slight traces of an older play to be observed, passages which may belong to an inferior hand, and incidents, such as that of the rising of the ghosts, suggested prob- ably by similar ones in a more ancient composition. That the play of Richard III., as we now have it, is essentially Shakespeare's, cannot admit of a doubt; but as little can it be questioned that to the circumstance of an anterior work on the subject having been used do we owe some of its weakness and excessively turbulent char- acter. No copy of this older play is known to exist, but one brief speech and the two following Hnes have been accidentally preserved : — * My liege, the Duke of Buckingham is ta'en, And Banister is come for his reward ' — 14 King Richard the Third [compare Richai'd III. iv, 4. 529 : 'My liege, the Duke of Buckingham is taken'], from which it is clear that the new dramatist did not hesitate to adopt an occasional line from his predecessor, although he entirely omitted the character of Banister. Both plays must have been successful, for, notwithstanding the great popularity of Shakespeare's, the more ancient one sustained its ground on the English stage until the reign of Charles I." The fact appears to be, as other critics have noted, that Shakespeare when he wrote Richard III. was still under the influence of Marlowe, and modelled the play after that dramatist. '• It was Marlowe's characteristic," as Furnivall remarks, " to embody in a character, and realize with terrific force, the workings of a single passion. In Tamburlaine he personified the lust of dominion, in Faustus the lust of forbidden power and knowledge, in Barabas {The Jew of Malta) the lust of wealth and blood. In Richard III. Shakspere embodied ambi- tion, and sacrificed his whole play to this one figure. . . . The weakest part of the play is the scene of the citizens' talk ; and the poorness of it, and the monotony of the women's curses, have given rise to the theory that in Richard III. Shakspere was only re-writing an old play, of which he let bits stand. But though I once thought this possible, I have since become certain that it is not so. The wooing of Anne by Richard has stirred me, in reading it aloud, almost as much as any- thing else in Shakspere. Note, too, how the first lines of the play lift you out of the mist and confusion Introduction 15 of the Henry VI. plays into the sun of Shakspere's genius." Oechelhauser {Essay ilber Richa7'd III.) aptly says that this play marks " the significant boundary-stone which separates the works of Shakespeare's youth from the immortal works of the period of his fuller splendour." Richard Burbage was particularly celebrated in the part of Richard in this play. The line, " A horse ! a horse ! my kingdom for a horse ! " was rendered by him with so much vigour and effect that it came to be imitated, and sometimes burlesqued, by contemporary writers. "The speech made such an impression on Marston that it appears in his works, not merely in its authentic form, but satirized and travestied into such lines as, ^ A man ! a man 1 a kingdom for a man ! ' {Scourge of Villanie, 1598); 'A boate ! a boate ! a boate ! a full hundred markes for a boate ! ' {Eastivard Hoe, 1605) ; 'A foole ! a foole ! a foole ! my coxcombe for a foole!' {Parasitaster, 1606). Burbage continued to act the part of Richard until his death in 1619, and his supremacy in the character lingered for many years in the recollection of the public." Corbet, the witty and poetical Bishop of Oxford, in his Iter Boreale — a poetical narrative of a journey, in the manner of Horace's yOR^Ei: following her Queen Elizabeth. Ah, who shall hinder me to wail and weep, To chide my fortune and torment myself ? I '11 join with black despair against my soul, And to myself become an enemy. Duchess. What means this scene of rude impatience ? Queen Elizabeth. To make an act of tragic violence. — Edward, my lord, thy son, our king, is dead ! — 40 Why grow the branches when the root is gone ? Why wither not the leaves that want their sap ? If you will live, lament ; if die, be brief. That our swift-winged souls may catch the king's. Or, like obedient subjects, follow him To his new kingdom of ne'er-changing night. Duchess. Ah, so much interest have I in thy sorrow As I had title in thy noble husband. I have bewept a worthy husband's death. And liv'd with looking on his images ; 50 But now two mirrors of his princely semblance Are crack'd in pieces by malignant death. And I for comfort have but one false glass. That grieves me when I see my shame in him. Thou art a widow, yet thou art a mother And hast the comfort of thy children left ; But death hath snatch'd my husband from mine arms. And pluck'd two crutches from my feeble hands, 92 King Richard the Third [Act ii Clarence and Edward. O, what cause have I, Thine being but a moiety of my moan, 60 To overgo thy woes and drown thy cries ! Boy. Ah, aunt, you wept not for our father's death ! How can we aid you with our kindred tears? GirL Our fatherless distress was left unmoan'd ; Your widow-dolour likewise be unwept ! Queen Elizabeth. Give me no help in lamentation ; I am not barren to bring forth complaints. All springs reduce their currents to mine eyes. That I, being govern'd by the watery moon. May send forth plenteous tears to drown the world ! 70 Ah, for my husband, for my dear lord Edward ! Children. Ah, for our father, for our dear lord Clarence ! Duchess. Alas for both ! both mine, Edward and Clar- ence ! Queen Elizabeth. What stay had I but Edward? and he 's gone. Children. What stay had we but Clarence ? and he 's gone. Duchess. What stays had I but they? and they are gone. Queen Elizabeth. Was never widow had so dear a loss. Children. Were never orphans had so dear a loss. Duchess. Was never mother had so dear a loss. Alas, I am the mother of these griefs ! 80 Their woes are parcell'd, mine are general. She for an Edward weeps, and so do I ; I for a Clarence weep, so doth not she ; Scene II] King Richard the Third 93 These babes for Clarence weep, and so do I ; I for an Edward weep, so do not they. — Alas, you three on me threefold distress'd Pour all your tears ! I am your sorrow's nurse, And I will pamper it with lamentation. Dorset. Comfort, dear mother ! God is much dis- pleas'd That you take with unthankfulness his doing. 90 In common worldly things 't is call'd ungrateful With dull unwillingness to repay a debt Which with a bounteous hand was kindly lent ; Much more to be thus opposite with heaven For it requires the royal debt it lent you. Rivers. Madam, bethink you, like a careful mother, Of the yo.ung prince your son; send straight for him. Let him be crown'd ; in him your comfort lives. Drown desperate sorrow in dead Edward's grave. And plant your joys in living Edward's throne. 100 Enter Gloster, Buckingham, Stanley, Hastings, Rat- cliff, and others Gloster. Sister, have comfort ; all of us have cause To wail the dimming of our shining star. But none can help our harms by wailing them. — Madam, my mother, I do cry you mercy ; I did not see your grace. — Humbly on my knee I crave your blessing. Duchess. God bless thee, and put meekness in thy breast, Love, charity, obedience, and true duty. 94 King Richard the Third [Act ii Gloster. Amen ; \_aside\ and make me die a good old man ! — That is the butt-end of a mother's blessing ; no I marvel that her grace did leave it out. Buckingham. You cloudy princes and heart-sorrowing peers, That bear this heavy mutual load of moan, Now cheer each other in each other's love \ Though we have spent our harvest of this king, We are to reap the harvest of his son. The broken rancour of your high-swoln hearts, But lately splinter' d, knit, and join'd together, Must gently be preserv'd, cherish'd, and kept. Me seemeth good that, with some little train, 120 Forthwith from Ludlow the young prince be fet. Hither to London, to be crown'd our king. Rivers. Why with some little train, my Lord of Buck- ingham ? Buckingham. Marry, my lord, lest, by a multitude. The new-heal'd wound of malice should break out. Which would be so much the more dangerous By how much the estate is green and yet ungovern'd. Where every horse bears his commanding rein And may direct his course as please himself, As well the fear of harm as harm apparent, 130 In my opinion, ought to be prevented. Gloster. I hope the king made peace with all of us ; And the compact is firm and true in me. Rivers. And so in me, and so, I think, in all ; / Scene III] King Richard the Third 95 Yet, since it is but green, it should be put To no apparent likelihood of breach. Which, haply, by much company might be urg'd. Therefore, I say with noble Buckingham, That it is meet so few should fetch the prince. Hastings. And so say I. 140 Gloster. Then be it so ; and go we to determine Who they shall be that straight shall post to Ludlow. — Madam, — and you, my sister, — will you go To give your censures in this business? \_Exeunt all but Buckingham and Gloster. Buckingham. My lord, whoever journeys to the prince. For God's sake, let not us two stay at home ; For, by the way, I '11 sort occasion. As index to the story we late talk'd of. To part the queen's proud kindred from the prince. Gloster. My other self, my counsel's consistory, 150 My oracle, my prophet ! — My dear cousin, I, as a child, will go by thy direction. Towards Ludlow then, for we '11 not stay behind. \_Exeunf. Scene II L London. A Street Enter tivo Citizens, meeting 1 Citizen, pood morrow, neighbour ; whither away so fast? 2 Citizen. I promise you, I scarcely know myself. Hear you the news abroad ? I Citizen. Yes, that the king is dead. g6 King Richard the Third [Act ii 2 Citizen. Ill news, by 'r lady ; seldom comes the better. I fear, I fear, 't will prove a giddy world. Enter another Citizen 3 Citizen. Neighbours, God speed ! 1 Citizen. Give you good morrow, sir. 3 Citizen. Doth the news hold of good King Edward's death ? 2 Citizen. Ay, sir, it is too true ; :God help the while ! 3 Citizen. Then, masters, look to see a troublous world. 1 Citizen. No, no ; by God's good grace, his son shall reign. lo 3 Citizen. Woe to that land that 's govern'd by a child ! 2 Citizen. In him there is a hope of government, That in his nonage council under him, And in his full and ripen'd years himself, No doubt shall then and till then govern well. I Citizen. So stood the state when Henry the Sixth Was crown'd in Paris but at nine months old. 3 Citizen. Stood the state so? no, no, good friends, God wot. For then this land was famously enrich'd With politic grave counsel; then the king 20 Had virtuous uncles to protect his grace. I Citizen. Why, so hath this, both by his father and mother. X 1 Scene III] King Richard the Third 97 3 Citizen. Better it were they all came by his father, Or by his father there were none at all; For emulation who shall now be nearest Will touch us all too near, if God prevent not. O, full of danger is the Duke of Gloster ! And the queen's sons and brothers haught and proud; And were they to be rul'd, and not to rule, This sickly land might solace as before. 30 1 Citizen. Come, come, we fear the worst ; all will be well. 3 Citizen. When clouds are seen, wise men put on their cloaks ; When great leaves fall, then winter is at hand ; When the sun sets, who doth not look for night? Untimely storms make men expect a dearth. All may be well ; but, if God sort it so, 'T is more than we deserve or I expect. 2 Citizen. Truly, the hearts of men are full of fear ; You cannot reason almost with a man • That looks not heavily and full of dread. 40 3 Citizen. Before the days of change still is it so. By a divine instinct men's minds mistrust Ensuing danger ; as by proof we see The water swell before a boisterous storm. But leave it all to God. Whither away ? 2 Citizen. Marry, we were sent for to the justices. 3 Citizen. And so was I ; I '11 bear you company. \_Exeunt, RICHARD III. — 7 98 King Richard the Third [Act 11 Scene IV. London. A Room in the Palace Enter the Archbishop of York, the young Duke of York, Queen Elizabeth, and the Duchess of York. Archbishop. Last night I heard they lay at Northamp- ton ; At Stony Stratford they do rest to-night ; To-morrow or next day they will be here. Duchess. I long with all my heart to see the prince. I hope he is much grown since last I saw him. Quee7i Elizabeth. But I hear no ; they say my son of York Hath almost overtaken him in his growth. York. Ay, mother, but I would not have it so. Duchess. Why, my young cousin, it is good to grow. Yo7'k. Grandam, one night as we did sit at supper, 10 My uncle Rivers talk'd how I did grow More than my brother ; ' Ay,' quoth my uncle Gloster, 'Small herbs have grace, great weeds do grow apace.' And since, methinks, I would not grow so fast, Because sweet flowers are slow and weeds make haste. Duchess. Good faith, good faith, the saying did not hold In him that did object the same to thee ; He was the wretched'st thing when he was young, So long a-growing, and so leisurely. That, if his rule were true, he should be gracious. 20 Scene IV] King Richard the Third 99 Archbishop. And so, no doubt, he is, my gracious madam. Duchess: I hope he is ; but yet let mothers doubt. York. Now, by my troth, if I had been remember 'd, I could have given my uncle's grace a flout, To touch his growth nearer than he touch'd mine. Duchess. How, my young York? I prithee, let me hear it. York. Marry, they say my uncle grew so fast That he could gnaw a crust at two hours old ; 'T was full two years ere I could get a tooth. Grandam, this would have been a biting jest. 30 Duchess. I prithee, pretty York, who told thee this? York. Giandam, his nurse. Duchess. His nurse ! why, she was dead ere thou wast born. Yoi'k. If 't were not she, I cannot tell who told me. Queen Elizabeth. A parlous boy ! Go to, you are too shrewd. Archbishop. Good madam, be not angry with the child. Queen Elizabeth. Pitchers have ears. Enter a Messenger Archbishop. Here comes a messenger. — What news? Messenger. Such news, my lord, as grieves me to report. Queen Elizabeth. How doth the prince? Messenger. Well, madam, and in health. L.ffC. lOO King Richard the Third [Act ii Duchess. What is thy news ? " 41 Messenger. Lord Rivers and Lord Grey are sent to Pomfret, And with them Sir Thomas Vaughan, prisoners. Duchess. Who hath committed them? Messenger. The mighty dukes, Gloster and Buckingham. Archbishop. For what offence ? Messenger. The sum of all I can, I have disclos'd ; Why or for what the nobles were committed Is all unknown to me, my gracious lord. Queen Elizabeth. Ay me, I see the ruin of my house ! The tiger now hath seiz'd the gentle hind \ 50 Insulting tyranny begins to jet Upon the innocent and aweless throne. — Welcome destruction, blood, and massacre ! I see, as in a map, the end of all. Duchess. Accursed and unquiet wrangling days, How many of you have mine eyes beheld ! My husband lost his Hfe to get the crown ; And often up and down my sons were toss'd, For me to joy and weep their gain and loss ; And being seated, and domestic broils 60 Clean overblown, themselves, the conquerors, Make war upon themselves, brother to brother, Blood to blood, self against self. — O, preposterous And frantic outrage, end thy damned spleen, Or let me die, to look on death no more ! Scene IV] King Richard the Third loi Queen Elizabeth. Come, come, my boy; we will to sanctuary. — Madam, farewell. Duchess. Stay, I will go with you. Queen Elizabeth. You have no cause. Ai'chbishop. My gracious lady, go, \_To the Queen. And thither bear your treasure and your goods. For my part, I '11 resign unto your grace 70 The seal I keep ; and so betide to me As well I tender you and all of yours ! Come, I '11 conduct you to the sanctuary. \_Exeunt. .pJLp -P^W>, I i f Pom FRET Castle ACT III Scene I. London. A Street The trumpets sound. Enter the Prince of Wales, Glos- TER, Buckingham, Cardinal Bourchier, Catesby, and others Buckingham. Welcome, sweet prince, to London, to your chamber. Gloster. Welcome, dear cousin, my thought's sov- ereign ; The weary way hath made you melancholy. Prince. No, uncle ; but our crosses on the way Have made it tedious, wearisome, and heavy ; I want more uncles here to welcome me. I02 Scene I] King Richard the Third 103 Gloster. Sweet prince, the untainted virtue of your years Hath not yet div'd into the world's deceit. No more can you distinguish of a man Than of his outward show, which, God he knows, lo Seldom or never jumpeth with the heart. Those uncles which you want were dangerous ; Your grace attended to their sugar'd words, But look'd not on the poison of their hearts. God keep you from them, and from such false friends ! Prince. God keep me from false friends ! but they were none. Gloster. My lord, the mayor of London comes to greet you. Enter the Lord Mayor and his Train Mayor. God bless your grace with health and happy days ! Prince. I thank you, good my lord, — and thank you all.— I thought my mother and my brother York 20 Would long ere this have met us on the way ; Fie ! what a slug is Hastings, that he comes not To tell us whether they will come or no ! Enter Hastings Buckingha7n. And, in good time, here comes the sweating lord. I04 King Richard the Third [Act iii Prince. Welcome, my lord. What ! will our mother come? Hastings. On what occasion, God he knows, not I, The queen your mother and your brother York Have taken sanctuary ; the tender prince Would fain have come with me to meet your grace, But by his mother was perforce withheld. 30 Buckingham. Fie ! what an indirect and peevish course Is this of hers ! — Lord cardinal, will your grace Persuade the queen to send the Duke of York Unto his princely brother presently? — If she deny. Lord Hastings, go with him. And from her jealous arms pluck him perforce. Cardinal. My Lord of Buckingham, if my weak oratory Can from his mother win the Duke of York, Anon expect him here ; but, if she be obdurate To mild entreaties, God in heaven forbid 40 We should infringe the holy privilege Of blessed sanctuary ! not for all this land Would I be guilty of so great a sin. Buckingham. You are too senseless-obstinate, my lord, Too ceremonious and traditional ; Weigh it but with the grossness of this age. You break not sanctuary in seizing him. The benefit thereof is always granted To those whose dealings have deserv'd the place, And those who have the wit to claim the place. 50 This prince hath neither claim'd it nor deserv'd it. And therefore, in mine opinion, cannot have it ; Scene I] King Richard the Third 105 Then, taking him from thence that is not there, You break no privilege nor charter there. Oft have I heard of sanctuary men, But sanctuary children ne'er till now. Cardinal. My lord, you shall o'er-rule my mind for once. — Come on, Lord Hastings, will you go with me ? Hastings. I go, my lord. 59 Prince. Good lords, make all the speedy haste you may. — \_Exeuni Cardinal and Hastings. Say, uncle Gloster, if our brother come. Where shall we sojurn till our coronation? Gloster. Where it think'st best unto your royal self If I may counsel you, some day or two Your highness shall repose you at the Tower ; Then where you please, and shall be thought most fit For your best health and recreation. Prince. I do not like the Tower, of any place. — Did Julius Caesar build that place, my lord? Buckingham. He did, my gracious lord, begin that place, 70 Which, since, succeeding ages have re-edified. Prince. Is it upon record, or else reported Successively from age to age, he built it ? Buckingham. Upon record, my gracious lord. Prince. But say, my lord, it were not register'd, Methinks the truth should live from age to age, As 't were retail'd to all posterity. Even to the general all- ending day. io6 King Richard the Third [Act iii Gloster. \_Aside\ So wise so young, they say, do never live long. Prince. What say you, uncle ? 80 Gloster. I say, without characters fame lives long. — \^Aside'\ Thus, like the formal Vice, Iniquity, I moralize two meanings in one word. Prince. That Julius Caesar was a famous man ; With what his valour did enrich his wit, His wit set down to make his valour live. Death makes no conquest of his conqueror ; For now he lives in fame, though not in life. — I '11 tell you what, my cousin Buckingham, — Buckingha7n. What, my gracious lord? 90 Prince. An if I live until I be a man, I '11 win our ancient right in France again, Or die a soldier, as I liv'd a king. Gloster. [^Aside'] Short summers lightly have a for- ward spring. Enter York, Hastings, and the Cardinal Buckingham. Now, in good time, here comes the Duke of York. Prince. Richard of York, how fares our noble brother ? York. Well, my dread lord ; so must I call you now. Prince. Ay, brother, to our grief, as it is yours. Too late he died that might have kept that title. Which by his death hath lost much majesty. 100 Gloster. How fares our cousin, noble Lord of York? York. I thank you, gentle uncle. O, my lord, Scene I] King Richard the Third 107 You said that idle weeds are fast in growth ; ^ The prince my brother hath outgrown me far. Gloster. He hath, my lord. York. And therefore is he idle? Gloster. O, my fair cousin, I must not say so. York. Then he is more beholding to you than I. Gloster. He may command me as my sovereign, But you have power in me as in a kinsman. York. I pray you, uncle, give me this dagger. no Gloster. My dagger, httle cousin? with all my heart. Prince. A beggar, brother? York. Of my kind uncle, that I know will give ; And being but a toy, which is no grief to give. Gloster. A greater gift than that I '11 give my cousin. York. A greater gift? O, that 's the sword to it. Gloster. Ay, gentle cousin, were it light enough. York. O, then, I see, you'll part but with light gifts ; In weightier things you '11 say a beggar nay. Gloster. It is too weighty for your grace to wear. 120 York. I weigh it lightly, were it heavier. Gloster. What ! would you have my weapon, little lord? York. I would, that I might thank you as you call me. Gloster. How ? York. Little. Prince. My Lord of York will still be cross in talk. — Uncle, your grace knows how to bear with him. Yo7'k. You mean, to bear me, not to bear with me. — Uncle, my brother mocks both you and me ; io8 King Richard the Third [Act III Because tljat I am little, like an ape, 130 He thinks that you should bear me on your shoulders. Buckingham. With what a sharp-provided wit he reasons ! To mitigate the scorn he gives his uncle, He prettily and aptly taunts himself. So cunning, and so young, is wonderful. Gloster. My lord, will 't please you pass along? Myself and my good cousin Buckingham Will to your mother, to entreat of her To meet you at the Tower and welcome you. York. What ! will you go unto the Tower, my lord ! 140 Prince. My lord protector needs will have it so. York. I shall not sleep in quiet at the Tower. Gloster. Why, what should you fear? York. Marry, my uncle Clarence' angry ghost; My grandam told me he was murther'd there. Prince. I fear no uncles dead. Gloster. Nor none that live, I hope. Prince. An if they live, I hope I need not fear. But come, my lord ; and, with a heavy heart, Thinking on them, go I unto the Tower. 150 \_A sennet. Exeunt Prince^ York, Hastings] Car- dinaly and Attendants. Buckingham. Think you, my lord, this little prating York Was not incensed by his subtle mother To taunt and scorn you thus opprobriously ? Gloster. No doubt, no doubt. O, 't is a parlous boy ! Scene I] King Richard the Third 109 Bold, quick, ingenious, forward, capable ; He 's all the mother's, from the top to toe. Buckingham. Well, let them rest. — Come hither, Catesby. Thou art sworn as deeply to effect what we intend As closely to conceal what we impart. Thou know'st our reasons urg'd upon the way; — 160 What think' St thou? is it not an easy matter To make William Lord Hastings of our mind, For the instalment of this noble duke In the seat royal of this famous isle ? Catesby. He for his father's sake so loves the prince That he will not be won to aught against him. Buckingham. W^hat think'st thou then of Stanley? will not he? Catesby. He will do all in all as Hastings doth. Buckinghain. Well, then, no more but this. Go, gentle Catesby, And, as it were far off, sound thou Lord Hastings 170 How he doth stand affected to our purpose ; And summon him to-morrow to the Tower, To sit about the coronation. If thou dost find him tractable to us. Encourage him, and tell him all our reasons : If he be leaden, icy-cold, unwilling, Be thou so too, and so break off the talk. And give us notice of his inclination ; For we to-morrow hold divided councils. Wherein thyself shalt highly be employ'd. 180 no King Richard the Third [Act III Gloster. Commend me to Lord William; tell him, Catesby, His ancient knot of dangerous adversaries To-morrow are let blood at Pomfret Castle, And bid my lord, for joy of this good news, Give Mistress Shore one gentle kiss the more. Buckingham. Good Catesby, go, effect this business soundly. Catesby. My good lords both, with all the heed I can. Gloster. Shall we hear from you, Catesby, ere we sleep ? Catesby. You shall, my lord. 189 Gloster. At Crosby House, there shall you find us both. \_Exit Catesby. Buckingham. Now, my lord, what shall we do, if we perceive Lord Hastings will not yield to our complots ? Gloster. Chop off his head ; — something we will de- termine. And, look, when I am king, claim thou of me The earldom of Hereford, and all the movables Whereof the king my brother was possess'd. Buckingham. I '11 claim that promise at your grace's hand. Gloster. And look to have it yielded with all kindness. Come, let us sup betimes, that afterwards 199 We may digest our complots in some form. \Exeunt. Scene II] King Richard the Third in Scene II. Before Lord Hastings^ s House Enter a Messenger Messenger. My lord ! my lord ! — \Knocking. Hastings. \^Within'\ Who knocks? Messenger. One from the Lord Stanley. Hastings. [JVit/iin'] What is 't o'clock? Messenger. Upon the stroke of four. Enter Hastings Hastings. Cannot my Lord Stanley sleep these tedious nights ? Messe?iger. So it appears by that I have to say. First, he commends him to your noble self. Hastifigs. What then? Messenger. Then certifies your lordship that this night He dreamt the boar had rased off his helm ; n Besides, he says, there are two councils kept, And that may be determin'd at the one Which may make you and him to rue at the other. Therefore, he sends to know your lordship's pleasure, If you will presently take horse with him, And with all speed post with him toward the north, To shun the danger that his soul divines. Hastings. Go, fellow, go, return unto thy lord. Bid him not fear the separated council. 20 His honour and myself are at the one. And at the other is my good friend Catesby, 112 King Richard the Third [Act in Where nothing can proceed that toucheth us Whereof I shall not have intelligence. Tell him his fears are shallow, without instance ; And for his dreams — I wonder he 's so simple To trust the mockery of unquiet slumbers. To fly the boar before the boar pursues Were to incense the boar to follow us, And make pursuit where he did mean no chase. 30 Go, bid thy master rise and come to me ; And we will both together to the Tower, Where, he shall see, the boar will use us kindly. Messenger. I '11 go, my lord, and tell him what you say. ^ \_Exit. Enter Catesby Catesby. Many good morrows to my noble lord ! Hastings. Good morrow, Catesby ; you are early stirring. What news, what news, in this our tottering state ? Catesby. It is a reeling world, indeed, my lord ; And, I believe, will never stand upright Till Richard wear the garland of the realm. 40 Hastings. How ! wear the garland ! dost thou mean the crown? Catesby. Ay, my good lord. Hastings. I '11 have this crown of mine cut from my shoulders Before I '11 see the crown so foul misplac'd. But canst thou guess that he doth aim at it? Catesby. Ay, on my life, and hopes to find you forward Scene II] King Richard the Third lij Upon his party for the gain thereof; And thereupon he sends you this good news, — That this same very day your enemies, The kindred of the queen, must die at Pomfret. 50 Hastings. Indeed, I am no mourner for that news, Because they have been still my adversaries ; But that I '11 give my voice on Richard's side, To bar my master's heirs in true descent, God knows I will not do it, to the death. Catesby. God keep your lordship in that gracious mind ! Hastings. But I shall laugh at this a twelvemonth hence. That they which brought me in my master's hate, I live to look upon their tragedy. Well, Catesby, ere a fortnight make me older, 60 I '11 send some packing that yet think not on 't. Catesby. 'T is a vile thing to die, my gracious lord, When men are unprepar'd and look not for it. Hastings. O, monstrous, monstrous ! and so falls it out With Rivers, Vaughan, Grey; and so 't will do With some men else, who think themselves as safe As thou and I, who, as thou know'st, are dear To princely Richard and to Buckingham. Catesby. The princes both make high account of you ; \_Aside'\ For they account his head upon the bridge. 70 Hastings. I know they do, and I have well deserv'd it. — Enter Stanley Come on, come on; where is your boar-spear, man? Fear you the boar, and go so unprovided? RICHARD III. — 8 114 ^i^g Richard the Third [Act iii Stanley. My lord, good morrow; — good morrow, Catesby. — You may jest on, but, by the holy rood, I do not like these several councils, I. Hastings. My lord, I hold my life as dear as yours ; And never in my days, I do protest. Was it so precious to me as 't is now. Think you, but that I know our state secure, 80 I would be so triumphant as I am? Stanley. The lords at Pom fret, when they rode from London, Were jocund and suppos'd their states were sure, And they, indeed, had no cause to mistrust ; But yet, you see, how soon the day o'ercast. This sudden stab of rancour I misdoubt ; Pray God, I say, I prove a needless coward ! What, shall we toward the Tower ? the day is spent. Hastings. Come, come, have with you. — Wot you what, my lord ? To-day the lords you talk of are beheaded. 90 Stanley. They for their truth might better wear their heads Than some that have accus'd them wear their hats. But come, my lord, let 's away. Enter a Pursuivant Hastings. Go on before ; I '11 talk with this good fellow. — \_Exeunt Stanley and Catesby. How now, sirrah ! how goes the world with thee ? Scene II] King Richard the Third 1 1 5 Pursuivant. The better that your lordship please to ask. Hastings. I tell thee, man, 't is better with me now Than when thou met'st me last where now we meet. Then was I going prisoner to the Tower, By the suggestion of the queen's allies ; 100 But now I tell thee — keep it to thyself — This day those enemies are put to death, And I in better state than ere I was. Pursuivant. God hold it to your honour's good content ! Hastings. Gramercy, fellow. There, drink that for me. [ Throwing hiin his purse. Pursuivant. I thank your honour. \_Exit. Enter a Priest Priest. Well met, my lord ; I am glad to see your honour. Hastings. I thank thee, good Sir John, with all my heart. I am in your debt for your last exercise ; Come the next Sabbath, and I will content you. no Enter Buckingham Buckingham. What, talking with a priest, lord cham- berlain ! Your friends at Pomfret, they do need the priest; Your honour hath no shriving work in hand. Hastings. Good faith, and when I met this holy man, ii6 ^ing Richard the Third [Act ill The men you talk of came into my mind. What, go you toward the Tower ? Buckingham. I do, my lord, but long I cannot stay there ; I shall return before your lordship thence. Hastings. Nay, like enough, for I stay dinner there. Buckingham. \^Aside\ And supper too, although thou know'st it not. — 120 Come, will you go ? Hastings. I '11 wait upon your lordship. \Exeunt. Scene III. Pomfret. Before the Castle Enter Ratcliff, with a Guard, conducting Rivers, Grey, ajtd Vaughan to execution- Rivers. Sir Richard Ratcliff, let me tell thee this, — To-day shalt thou behold a subject die For truth, for duty, and for loyalty. Grey. God bless the prince from all the pack of you ! A knot you are of damned blood-suckers. Vaughan. You live that shall cry woe for this here- after. Ratcliff. Dispatch ; the limit of your lives is out. Rivers. O Pomfret, Pomfret ! O thou bloody prison, Fatal and ominous to noble peers ! Within the guilty closure of thy walls, 10 Richard the Second here was hack'd to death ; And, for more slander to thy dismal seat, We give to thee our guiltless blood to drink. Scene IV] King Richard the Third 117 Grey. Now Margaret's curse is fallen upon our heads, When she exclaim'd on Hastings, you, and I, For standing by when Richard stabb'd her son. Rivers. Then curs'd she Richard, then curs'd she Buckingham, Then curs'd she Hastings. — O, remember, God, To hear her prayer for them, as now for us ! And for my sister and her princely sons, 2.6 Be satisfied, dear God, with our true blood. Which, as thou know'st, unjustly must be spilt ! Ratcliff. Make haste ; the hour of death is expiate. Rivers. Come, Grey, — come, Vaughan, — let us here embrace ; Farewell until we meet again in heaven. [Exeunt. Scene IV. Lo7idon. A Room in the Tower Buckingham, Stanley, Hastings, the Bishop of Ely, Catesby, Lovel, and others, sitting at a table ; Officers of the Council attending Hastings.' Now, noble peers, the cause why we are met Is to determine of the coronation. In God's name, speak, — when is this royal day? Bucki7igha?n. Is all things ready for the royal time? Stanley. It is, and wants but nomination. Ely. To-morrow then I judge a happy day. Buckingham. Who knows the lord protector's mind herein ? Who is most inward with the noble duke? Ii8 King Richard the Third [Act ill Ely. Your grace, we think, should soonest know his mind. Buckingham. We know each other's faces ; for our hearts, lo He. knows no more of mine than I of yours, Nor I of his, my lord, than you of mine. — Lord Hastings, you and he are near in love. Hastings. I thank his grace, I know he loves me well ; But for his purpose in the coronation, I have not sounded him, nor he deliver'd His gracious pleasure any way therein. But you, my noble lords, may name the time. And in the duke's behalf I '11 give my voice. Which, I presume, he '11 take in gentle part. 20 Enter Gloster Ely. In happy time, here comes the duke himself. Gloster. My noble lords and cousins all, good morrow. I have been long a sleeper ; but I trust My absence doth neglect no great design Which by my presence might have been concluded. Buckingham. Had you not come upon your cue, my lord, William Lord Hastings had pronounc'd your part, I mean your voice for crowning of the king. Gloster. Than my Lord Hastings no man might be bolder ; His lordship knows me well, and loves me well. — 30 My Lord of Ely, when I was last in Holborn, Scene IV] King Richard the Third 119 I saw good strawberries in your garden there ; I do beseech you, send for some of them. Ely. Marry, and will, my lord, with all my heart. \^Exit Ely. Gloster. Cousin of Buckingham_, a word with you. S^Takes him aside. Catesby hath sounded Hastings in our business, And finds the testy gentleman so hot That he will lose his head ere give consent His master's child, as worshipfully he terms it. Shall lose the royalty of England's throne. 40 Buckingham. Withdraw yourself a while ; I '11 go with you. \_Exeunt Gloster and Buckingham. Stanley. We have not yet set down this day of tri- umph. To-morrow, in my judgment, is too sudden ; For I myself am not so well provided As else I would be, were the day prolong'd. Enter Bishop of Ely Ely. Where is my lord, the Duke of Gloster? I have sent for these strawberries. Hastings. His grace looks cheerfully and smooth this morning ; There 's some conceit or other Hkes him well When that he bids good morrow with such spirit. 50 I think there 's never a man in Christendom Can lesser hide his love or hate than he. For by his face straight shall you know hi^ heart. I20 K^ii^g Richard the Third [Act ill Stanley. What of his heart perceive you in his face By any livelihood he show'd to-day? Hastings. Marry, that with no man here he is offended ; For were he, he had shown it in his looks. Enter Gloster and Buckingham Gloster. I pray you all, tell me what they deserve That do conspire my death with devilish plots Of damned witchcraft, and that have prevail'd 60 Upon my body with their hellish charms ? Hasti7igs. The tender love I bear your grace, my lord, Makes me most forward in this princely presence To doom the offenders, whosoe'er they be ; I say, my lord, they have deserved death. Gloster. Then be your eyes the witness of their evil. Look how I am bevvitch'd ; behold mine arm Is like a blasted sapling wither'd up. And this is Edward's wife, that monstrous witch, Consorted with that harlot strumpet Shore, 70 That by their witchcraft thus have marked me. Hastings. If they have done this deed, my noble lord, — Gloster. If ! thou protector of this damned strumpet, Talk'st thou to me of ifs ? — Thou art a traitor ! — Off with his head ! — now, by Saint Paul I swear, I will not dine until I see the same. — Lovel and Ratcliff, look that it be done ; — The rest that love me, rise and follow me. [ Exeunt Council, with Gloster and Buckingham. Scene IV] King Richard the Third 121 Hastings. Woe, woe, for England ! not a whit for me ; For I, too fond, might have prevented this. 80 Stanley did dream the boar did rase his helm ; And I did scorn it and disdain to fly. Three times to-day my foot-cloth horse did stumble And started when he look'd upon the Tower, As loath to bear me to the slaughter-house. O, now I need the priest that spake to me ! I now repent I told the pursuivant. As too triumphing, how mine enemies To-day at Pomfret bloodily were butcher'd, And I myself secure in grace and favour. — 90 Margaret, Margaret, now thy heavy curse Is lighted on poor Hastings' wretched head ! Raicliff. Come, come, dispatch ; the duke would be at dinner. Make a short shrift ; he longs to see your head. Hastings. O, momentary grace of mortal men. Which we more hunt for than the grace of God ! Who builds his hope in air of your good looks Lives hke a drunken sailor on a mast. Ready with every nod to tumble down Into the fatal bowels of the deep. 100 Lovel. Come, come, dispatch ; 't is bootless to exclaim. Hastings. O, bloody Richard ! — miserable England ! 1 prophesy the fearfull'st time to thee That ever wretched age hath look'd upon. — Come, lead me to the block ; bear him my head. They smile at me who shortly shall be dead. \_Exeunt. 122 King Richard the Third [Act III Scene V. The Tower Walls Enter Gloster and Buckingham, in rotten armour, mar- vellous ill-favoured Gloster. Come, cousin, canst thou quake, and change thy colour, Murther thy breath in middle of a word, And then again begin, and stop again. As if thou wert distraught and mad with terror? Buckingham. Tut ! I can counterfeit the deep trage- dian. Speak and look back, and pry on every side. Tremble and start at wagging of a straw, Intending deep suspicion ; ghastly looks Are at my service, like enforced smiles. And both are ready in their offices , lo At any time to grace my stratagems. But what ! is Catesby gone ? Gloster. He is ; and, see, he brings the mayor along. Enter the Lord Mayor and Catesby Buckingha?n. Lord mayor, — Gloster. Look to the drawbridge there ! Buckingham. Hark ! a drum. Gloster. Catesby, o'erlook the walls. Buckingham. Lord mayor, the reason we have sent — Gloster. Look back, defend thee, here are enemies. Buckingham. God and our innocence defend and guard us ! Scene V] King Richard the Third 123 Enter Lovel and Ratcliff, with Hastings's head Gloster. Be patient, they are friends, Ratcliff and Lovel. 20 Lovel. Here is the head of that ignoble traitor, The dangerous and unsuspected Hastings. Gloster. So dear I lov'd the man that I must weep. I took him for the plainest harmless creature That breath'd upon the earth a Christian, Made him my book wherein my soul recorded The history of all her secret thoughts ; So smooth he daub'd his vice with show of virtue That, his apparent open guilt omitted, — I mean his conversation with Shore's wife, — 30 He liv'd from all attainder of suspect. Buckingham. Well, well, he was the covert'st shelter'd traitor That ever liv'd. — Would you imagine, or almost believe. Were 't not that, by great preservation. We live to tell it, that the subtle traitor This day had plotted, in the council-house. To murther me and my good Lord of Gloster ? Mayor. Had he done so? Gloster. What ! think you we are Turks or in- fidels? 40 Or that we would, against the form of law. Proceed thus rashly in the villain's death But that the extreme peril of the case. 124 King Richard the Third [Act iil The peace of England, and our persons' safety, Enforc'd us to this execution? Mayor. Now, fair befall you ! he deserv'd his death ; And your good graces both have well proceeded. To warn false traitors from the like attempts. Buckingham. I never look'd for better at his hands After he once fell in with Mistress Shore. 50 Yet had we not determin'd he should die Until your lordship came to see his end Which now the loving haste of these our friends. Something against our meanings, hath prevented ; Because, my lord, I would have had you heard The traitor speak and timorously confess The manner and the purpose of his treasons. That you might well have signified the same Unto the citizens, who haply may Misconstrue us in him and wail his death. 60 Mayor. But, my good lord, your grace's word shall serve. As well as I had seen and heard him speak ; And do not doubt, right noble princes both, But I '11 acquaint our duteous citizens With all your just proceedings in this case. Gloster. And to that end we wish'd your lordship here. To avoid the censures of the carping world. Buckingham. But since you come too late of our intent. Yet witness what you hear we did intend ; Scene V] King Richard the Third 125 And so, my good lord mayor, we bid farewell. 70 \_Exit Lcrd Mayor. Gloster. Go, after, after, cousin Buckingham. The mayor towards Guildhall hies him in all post. There, at your meetest vantage of the time. Infer the bastardy of Edward's children ; Tell them how Edward put to death a citizen Only for saying he would make his son Heir to the crown, meaning indeed his house. Which by the sign thereof was termed so. Moreover, urge his hateful luxury And bestial appetite in change of lust, 80 Which stretch'd unto their servants, daughters, wives, Even where his raging eye or savage heart Without control lusted to make a prey. Nay, for a need, thus far come near my person : Tell them when that my mother went with child Of that insatiate Edward, noble York, My princely father, then had wars in France, And by true computation of the time Found that the issue was not his begot. Which well appeared in his lineaments, 90 Being nothing like the noble duke my father. Yet touch this sparingly, as 't were far off. Because, my lord, you know my mother lives. Buckingham. Doubt not, my lord, I '11 play the orator As if the golden fee for which I plead Were for myself; and so, my lord, adieu. 126 King Richard the Third [Act iii Gloster. If you thrive well, bring them to Baynard's •Castle, Where you^shall find me well accompanied With reverend fathers and well-learned bishops. Buckingham. I go ; and towards three or four o'clock 100 Look for the news that the Guildhall affords. \_Exit. Glosier. Go, Lovel, with all speed to Doctor Shaw, — Go thou \to Catesby'\ to Friar Penker ; — bid them both Meet me within this hour at Baynard's Castle. — \_Exezint Love/ and Gates by. Now will I go to take some privy order To draw the brats of Clarence out of sight ; And to give order that no manner person Have any time recourse unto the princes. \_Extt. Scene VI. A Street Enter a Scrivener Scrivener. Here is the indictment of the good Lord Hastings, Which in a set hand fairly is engross'd. That it may be to-day read o'er in Paul's ; And mark how well the sequel hangs together. Eleven hours I have spent to write it over. For yesternight by Catesby was it sent me. The precedent was full as long a-doing ; And yet within these five hours Hastings liv'd, Untainted, unexamin'd, free, at liberty. Scene VII] King Richard the Third 127 Here 's a good world the while ! Who is so gross 10 That cannot see this palpable device? Yet who so bold but says he sees it not? Bad is the world ; and all will come to nought When such ill dealing must be seen in thought. \_Exit. Scene VIL Baynard^s Castle Enter Gloster and Buckingham, meeting Gloster. How now, how now ! what say the citizens? Buckingham. Now, by the holy mother of our Lord, The citizens are mum, say not a word. Gloster. Touch'd you the bastardy of Edward's children ? 9 Buckingham. I did ; with his contract with Lady Lucy, And his contract by deputy in France ; The insatiate greediness of his desires. And his enforcement of the city wives ; His tyranny for trifles ; his own bastardy. As being got, your father then in France, 10 And his resemblance, being not like the duke. Withal I did infer your lineaments, Being the right idea of your father. Both in your form and nobleness of mind ; Laid open all your victories in Scotland, Your discipline in war, wisdom in peace, Your bounty, virtue, fair humility ; Indeed, left nothing fitting for your purpose 128 King Richard the Third [Act III Untouch 'd or slightly handled in discourse ; And when my oratory drew toward end, 20 I bade them that did love their country's good Cry ' God save Richard, England's royal king ! ' Gloster. And did they so? Buckingham, No, so God help me, they spake not a word. But, like dumb statuas or breathing stones, Star'd each on other and look'd deadly pale ; Which when I saw, I reprehended them. And ask'd the mayor what meant this wilful silence. His answer was, the people were not us'd To be spoke to but by the recorder. 30 Then he w^s urg'd to tell my tale again : — ' Thus saith the duke, thus hath the duke inferr'd ; ' But nothing spoke in warrant from himself. When he had done, some followers of mine own At lower end of the hall hurl'd up their caps. And some ten voices cried, ' God save King Richard ! ' And thus I took the vantage of those few, — 'Thanks, gentle citizens and friends,' quoth I, ' This general applause and cheerful shout Argues your wisdom and your love to Richard ; ' 40 And even here brake off and came away. Gloster. What tongueless blocks were they ! would they not speak ? Will not the mayor then and his brethren come ? Buckingham. The mayor is here at hand. Intend some fear; Scene VII] King Richard the Third 129 Be not you spoke with but by mighty suit. And look you get a prayer-book in your hand, And stand between two churchmen, good my lord, For on that ground I '11 make a holy descant. And be not easily won to our requests ; Play the maid's part, still answer nay, and take it. 50 Gloster. I go ; and if you plead as well for them As I can say nay to thee for myself. No doubt we bring it to a happy issue. Bjickinghatn. Go, go, up to the leads ; the lord mayor knocks. — ^Exit Gloster. Enter the Lord Mayor, Alderman, a7id Citizens. Welcome, my lord ! I dance attendance here ; I think the duke will not be spoke withal. — Enter Catesby Now, Catesby, what says your lord to my request? Catesby. He doth entreat your grace, my noble lord, To visit him to-morrow or next day. He is within, with two right reverend fathers, 60 Divinely bent to meditation. And in no worldly suits would he be mov'd To draw him from his holy exercise. Buckingham. Return, good Catesby, to the gracious duke; Tell him, myself, the mayor and aldermen. In deep designs, in matter of great moment, RICHARD III. — 9 I JO King Richard the Third [Act ill No less importing than our general good, Are come to have some conference with his grace. Catesby. I '11 signify so much unto him straight. S^Exit. Buckingham. Ah, ha, my lord, this prince is not an Edward ! 70 He is not lolling on a lewd love-bed, But on his knees at meditation ; Not dallying with a brace of courtesans, But meditating with two deep divines ; Not sleeping to engross his idle body. But praying to enrich his watchful soul. Happy were England would this virtuous prince Take on his grace the sovereignty thereof; But sure, I fear, we shall not win him to it. Mayor. Marry, God defend his grace should say us nay ! 80 Buckingham. I fear he will. Here Catesby comes again. — Enter Catesby. Now, Catesby, what says his grace ? Catesby. He wonders to what end you have assembled Such troops of citizens to come to him ; His grace not being warn'd thereof before. He fears, my lord, you mean no good to him. Buckingham. Sorry I am my noble cousin should Suspect me, that I mean no good to him. By heaven, we come to him in perfect love ; And so once more return and tell his grace. — 90 \^Exit Catesby. Scene VII] King Richard the Third 131 When holy and devout rehgious men Are at their beads, 't is much to draw them thence, So sweet is zealous contemplation. Enter Gloster, in a gallery above, between tivo Bishops. Catesby returns Mayor. See, where his grace stands 'tween two clergy- men ! Buckingham. Two props of virtue for a Christian prince, To stay him from the fall of vanity ; And, see, a book of prayer in his hand. True ornament to know a holy man. — Famous Plantagenet, most gracious prince. Lend favourable ear to our requests, 100 And pardon us the interruption Of thy devotion and right Christian zeal. Gloster. My lord, there needs no such apology ; I do beseech your grace to pardon me. Who, earnest in the service of my God, Deferr'd the visitation of my friends. But, leaving this, what is your grace's pleasure? Bucki7igham. Even that, I hope, which pleaseth God above. And all good men of this ungovern'd isle. Gloster. I do suspect I have done some oifence no That seems disgracious in the city's eye. And that you come to reprehend my ignorance. 132 King Richard the Third [Act iii Buckijtgham. You have, my lord ; would it might please your grace On our entreaties to amend your fault ! Gloster. Else wherefore breathe I in a Christian land ? Buckingham. Know then, it is your fault that you re- sign The supreme seat, the throne majestical, The sceptred office of your ancestors. Your state of fortune and your due of birth, The lineal glory of your royal house, 120 To the corruption of a blemish'd stock ; Whiles, in the mildness of your sleepy thoughts, Which here we waken to our country's good, This noble isle doth want her proper limbs ; Her face defac'd with scars of infamy. Her royal stock graft with ignoble plants, And almost shoulder'd in the swallowing gulf Of dark forgetfulness and deep oblivion. Which to recure, we heartily solicit Your gracious self to take on you the charge 130 And kingly government of this your land ; Not as protector, steward, substitute. Or lowly factor for another's gain, But as successively from blood to blood. Your right of birth, your empery, your own. For this, consorted with the citizens. Your very worshipful and loving friends. And by their vehement instigation, In this just cause come I to move your grace. / Scene VII] King Richard the Third 133 Gloste7\ I cannot tell, if to depart in silence, 140 Or bitterly to speak in your reproof. Best fitteth my degree or your condition. If not to answer, — you might haply think Tongue-tied ambition, not replying, yielded To bear the golden yoke of sovereignty. Which fondly you would here impose on me ; If to reprove you for this suit of yours, So season'd with your faithful love to me, Then, on the other side, I check'd my friends. Therefore, to speak and to avoid the first, 150 And then, in speaking, not to incur the last, Definitively thus I answer you : Your love deserves my thanks, but my desert Unmeritable shuns your high request. First, if all obstacles were cut away. And that my path were even to the crown, As the ripe revenue and due of birth. Yet so much is my poverty of spirit, So mighty and so many my defects. That I would rather hide me from my greatness, 160 Being a bark to brook no mighty sea. Than in my greatness covet to be hid And in the vapour of my glory smother'd. But, God be thank'd, there is no need of me, — And much I need to help you, were there need. The royal tree hath left us royal fruit, Which, mellow'd by the stealing hours of time. Will well become the seat of majesty. 134 King Richard the Third [Act ill And make, no doubt, us happy by his reign. On him I lay that you would lay on me, 170 The right and fortune of his happy stars, — Which God defend that I should wring from him ! Buckingham. My lord, this argues conscience in your grace ; But the respects thereof are nice and trivial, All circumstances well considered. You say that Edward is your brother's son ; So say we too, but not by Edward's wife. For first was he contract to Lady Lucy — Your mother Hves a witness to his vow — And afterward by substitute betroth 'd 180 To Bona, sister to the King of France. These both put off, a poor petitioner, A care-craz'd mother to a many sons, A beauty-waning and distressed widow. Even in the afternoon of her best days. Made prize and purchase of his wanton eye, Seduc'd the pitch and height of his degree To base declension and loath'd bigamy. By her, in his unlawful bed, he got This Edward, whom our manners call the prince. 190 More bitterly could I expostulate, Save that, for reverence to some alive, I give a sparing limit to my tongue. Then, good my lord, take to your royal self This proffer'd benefit of dignity ; If not to bless us and the land withal, / Scene VII] King Richard the Third 135 Yet to draw forth your noble ancestry From the corruption of abusmg times Unto a Uneal true-derived course. Mayor. Do, good my lord, your citizens entreat you. Buckingham. Refuse not, mighty lord, this proffer 'd love. 201 Catesby, O, make them joyful, grant their lawful suit ! Gloster. Alas, why would you heap this care on me? I am unfit for state and majesty. I do beseech you, take it not amiss ; I cannot nor I will not yield to you. Buckiiigham. If you refuse it, — as in love and zeal, Loath to depose the child, your brother's son ; As well we know your tenderness of heart. And gentle, kind, effeminate remorse, 210 Which we have noted in you to your kindred, And equally, indeed, to all estates, — Yet know, whether you accept our suit or no. Your brother's son shall never reign our king ; But we will plant some other in your throne, To the disgrace and downfall of your house. And in this resolution here we leave you. — Come, citizens, we will entreat no more. S^Exit Buckingham ; the Mayoi^ Aldermen, and Citizens retiring. Catesby. Call him again, sweet prince, accept their suit ; If you deny them, all the land will rue it. 220 136 King Richard the Third [Act ill Gloster. Will you enforce me to a world of cares ? Call them again. I am not made of stone, But penetrable to your kind entreaties, Albeit against my conscience and my soul. — Re-enter Buckingham and the rest Cousin of Buckingham, and sage, grave men. Since you will buckle fortune on my back, To bear her burthen, whether I will or no, I must have patience to endure the load. But if black scandal or foul-fac'd reproach Attend the sequel of your imposition, 230 Your mere enforcement shall acquittance me From all the impure blots and stains thereof; For God doth know, and you may partly see, How far I am from the desire of this. Mayor. God bless your grace ! we see it, and will say it. Gloster, In saying so, you shall but say the truth. Buckingham. Then I salute you with this royal title, — Long live King Richard, England's worthy king ! All. Amen. Buckingham. To-morrow may it please you to be crown'd ? 240 Gloster. Even when you please, for you will have it so. Buckingham. To-morrow, then, we will attend your grace ; And so most joyfully we take our leave. / Scene VII] King Richard the Third 137 Gloster. Come, let us to our holy work again. — \_To the Bishops. Farewell, my cousin ; — farewell, gentle friends. \_Exeunt. ACT IV Scene I. Before the Tower Enter, on one side, Queen Elizabeth, Duchess of York, and Marquis of Dorset ; on the other, Anne Duchess OF Gloster, leading Lady Margaret Plantagenet, Clarence's young daughter Duchess. Who meets us here ? — my niece Plantagenet Led in the hand of her kind aunt of Gloster ! Now, for my hfe, she 's wandering to the Tower, On pure heart's love to greet the tender princes. — Daughter, well met. 138 / Scene I] King Richard the Third 139 Anne. God give your graces both A happy and a joyful time of day ! Queen Elizabeth. As much to you, good sister ! whither away? Anne. No farther than the Tower, and, as I guess, Upon the hke devotion as yourselves. To gratulate the gentle princes there. 10 Queen Elizabeth. Kind sister, thanks ; we '11 enter all together : And, in good time, here the lieutenant comes. — Enter Brakenbury Master lieutenant, pray you, by your leave. How doth the prince, and my young son of York ? Brakenbury. Right well, dear madam. By your pa- tience, I may not suffer you to visit them ; The king hath strictly charg'd the contrary. Queen Elizabeth. The king ! who 's that? Brakenbu7'y. I mean the lord protector. Queen Elizabeth. The Lord protect him from that kingly title ! Hath he set bounds between their love and me ? 20 I am their mother ; who shall bar me from them ? Duchess. I am their father's mother; I will see them. Anne. Their aunt I am in law, in love their mother. Then bring me to their sights ; I '11 bear thy blame And take thy office from thee, on my peril. 140 King Richard the Third [Act IV Brakenbury. No, madam, no, I may not leave it so ; I am bound by oath, and therefore pardon me. \Exit. Enter Stanley Stanley. Let me but meet you, ladies, one hour hence, And I '11 salute your grace of York as mother And reverend looker-on of two fair queens. — 30 Come, madam, you must straight to Westminster, \To the Duchess of Gloster. There to be crowned Richard's royal queen. Queen Elizabeth. Ah, cut my lace asunder, That my pent heart may have some scope to beat, Or else I swoon with this dead-killing news ! Anne. Despiteful tidings ! O, unpleasing news ! Dorset. Be of good cheer. — Mother, how fares your grace ? Queen Elizabeth. O Dorset, speak not to me, get thee gone ! Death and destruction dog thee at thy heels ; Thy mother's name is ominous to children. 40 If thou wilt outstrip death, go cross the seas. And live with Richmond from the reach of hell. Go, hie thee, hie thee from this slaughter-house, Lest thou increase the number of the dead, And make me die the thrall of Margaret's curse, — Nor mother, wife, nor England's counted queen. Stanley. Full of wise care is this your counsel, madam. — Take all the swift advantage of the hours ; You shall have letters from me to my son Scene IJ King Richard the Third 141 In your behalf, to meet you on the way. 50 Be not ta'en tardy by unwise delay. Duchess. O, ill-dispersing wind of misery ! — O, my accursed womb, the bed of death ! A cockatrice hast thou hatch'd to the world, Whose unavoided eye is murtherous. Stanley. Come, madam, come ; I in all haste was sent. Anne. And I with all unwillingness will go. — O, would to God that the inclusive verge Of golden metal that must round my brow Were red-hot steel to sear me to the brain ! 60 Anointed let me be with deadly venom And die ere men can say ' God save the queen ! ' Queen Elizabeth. Go, go, poor soul, I envy not thy glory ; To feed my humour wish thyself no harm. Anne. No ! why ? — When he that is my husband now Came to me, as I follow'd Henry's corse, When scarce the blood was well wash'd from his hands Which issued from my other angel husband. And that dear saint which then I weeping follow'd, — O, when, I say, I look'd on Richard's face, 70 This was my wish : ' Be thou,' quoth I, 'accurs'd. For making me, so young, so old a widow ! And, when thou wed'st, let sorrow haunt thy bed ; And be thy wife — if any be so mad — More miserable by the life of thee Than thou hast made me by my dear lord's death ! ' Lo, ere I can repeat this curse again. 142 K.ing Richard the Third [Act iv Within so small a time, my woman's heart Grossly grew captive to his honey words, And prov'd the subject of mine own soul's curse, 80 Which hitherto hath held mine eyes from rest ; For never yet one hour in his bed Did I enjoy the golden dew of sleep, But with his timorous dreams was still awak'd. Besides, he hates me for my father Warwick, And will, no doubt, shortly be rid of me. Queen Elizabeth, Poor heart, adieu ! I pity thy com- plaining. Anne. No more than with my soul I mourn for yours. Dorset. Farewell, thou woful welcomer of glory ! Anne. Adieu, poor soul, that tak'st thy leave of it 1 90 Duchess. Go thou to Richmond, and good fortune guide thee ! — \To Dorset. Go thou to Richard, and good angels tend thee ! — [7J? Anne. Go thou to sanctuary, and good thoughts possess thee ! — \To Queen Elizabeth. I to my grave, where peace and rest lie with me ! Eighty odd years of sorrow have I seen. And each hour's joy wrack'd with a week of t'een. Queen Elizabeth. Stay yet, look back with me unto the Tower. — Pity, you ancient stones, those tender babes Whom envy hath imraur'd within your walls. Rough cradle for such httle pretty ones ! 100 Rude ragged nurse, old sullen play-fellow Scene iij King Richard the Third 143 For tender princes, use my babies well ! So foolish sorrow bids your stones farewell. [^Exeunt. Scene II. A Room of State in the Palace A sennet. Ente?- Richard, crowned, and iit state ; Buck- ingham, Catesby, a Page, ajid others King Richard. Stand all apart. — Cousin of Bucking- ham ! Buckingham. My gracious sovereign. \_Richard ascends the throne. The triwipets sound. King Richard. Give me thy hand. Thus high, by thy advice And thy assistance, is King Richard seated. — But shall we wear these glories for a day? Or shall they last, and we rejoice in them? Buckingham. Still live they, and forever let them last ! King Richard. Ah, Buckingham, now do I play the touch. To try if thou be current gold indeed ! — Young Edward lives. — Think now what I would speak. 10 Buckingham. Say on, my loving lord. King Richard. Why, Buckingham, I say I would be king. Buckingham. Why, so you are, my thrice-renowned lord. King Richard. Ha ! am I king ? 'T is so ; but Edward lives. Buckingham. True, noble prince. 144 ^i^g Richard the Third [Act IV King Richard. O, bitter consequence, That Edward still should live ! — ' True, noble prince ! ' — Cousin, thou wast not wont to be so dull. — Shall I be plain ? — I wish the bastards dead. And I would have it suddenly perform'd. What say'st thou now? speak suddenly; be brief. 20 Buckingham. Your grace may do your pleasure. King Richard. Tut, tut ! thou art all ice, thy kindness freezes. • Say, have I thy consent that they shall die? Buckingham. Give me some little breath, some pause, dear lord. Before I positively speak in this ; I will resolve you herein presently. \_Exit. Catesby. \_Aside to anothe?-] The king is angry; see, he gnaws his lip. King Richard. 1 will converse with iron-witted fools \_Descends from his throne. And unrespective boys ; none are for me That look into me with considerate eyes. 30 High-reaching Buckingham grows circumspect. — Boy! Page. My lord ? King Richai'd. Know'st thou not any whom corrupt- ing gold Will tempt unto a close exploit of death ? Page. I know a discontented gentleman, Whose humble means match not his haughty spirit ; Scene II] King Richard the Third 145 Gold were as good as twenty orators, And will, no doubt, tempt him to any thing. 39 King Richard. What is his name ? Page.' His name, my lord, is Tyrrel. King Richai'd. I partly know the man ; go, call him hither, boy. — \_Exit Page. The deep-revolving witty Buckingham No more shall be the neighbour to my counsels. Hath he so long held out with me untir'd, And stops he now for breath? — well, be it so. — Enter vStanley How now, Lord Stanley ? what 's the news ? Stanley. Know, my loving lord, The Marquis Dorset, as I hear, is fled To Richmond in the parts where he abides. King Richard. Come hither, Catesby. Rumour it abroad 50 That Anne my wife is very grievous sick ; I will take order for her keeping close. Inquire me out some mean poor gentleman, Whom I will marry straight to Clarence' daughter. — The boy is foolish, and I fear not him. — Look, how thou dream'st ! — I say again, give out That Anne my queen is sick, and like to die. About it ; for it stands me much upon To stop all hopes whose growth may damage me. — \^Exit Catesby. I must be married to my brother's daughter, 60 RICHARD III. — 10 146 King Richard the Third [Act IV Or else my kingdom stands on brittle glass. — Murther her brothers, and then marry her? Uncertain way of gain ! But I am in So far in blood, that sin will pluck on sin. * Tear-falling pity dwells not in this eye. — Enter Page, with Tyrrel Is thy name Tyrrel? Tyrrel. James Tyrrel, and your most obedient subject. King Richard. Art thou, indeed ? Tyrrel. Prove me, my gracious lord. King Richard. Dar'st thou resolve to kill a friend of mine? Tyrrel. Please you ; but I had rather kill two enemies. King Richard. Why, then thou hast it ; two deep enemies, 71 Foes to my rest and my sweet sleep's disturbers, Are they that I would have thee deal upon. Tyrrel, I mean those bastards in the Tower. Tyrrel. Let me have open means to come to them, And soon I '11 rid you from the fear of them. King Richard. Thou sing'st sweet music. Hark, come hither, Tyrrel ; Go, by this token. — Rise, and lend thine ear. [ Whispers. There is no more but so ; — say it is done. And I will love thee and prefer thee for it. 80 Tyrrel. I will dispatch it straight. [^Exit. Scene II] King Richard the Third 147 Enter Buckingham Buckingha77t. My lord, I have consider'd in my mind The late demand that you did sound me in. King Richard. Well, let that rest, Dorset is fled to Richmond. Buckingham. I hear the news, ray lord. King Richard. Stanley, he is your wife's son; — well, look unto it. Buckingham. My lord, 1 claim the gift, my due by promise, For which your honour and your faith is pawn'd; The earldom of Hereford and the movables . Which you have promised I shall possess. 90 King Richard. Stanley, look to your wife ; if she convey Letters to Richmond, you shall answer it. Buckingham. What says your highness to my just request ? King Richard. I do remember me, — Henry the Sixth Did prophesy that Richmond should be king, When Richmond was a little peevish boy. A king ! — perhaps — Buckingha7n. My lord, — King Richard. How chance the prophet could not at that time Have told me, I being by, that I should kill him? 100 Bucki7igham. My lord, your promise for the earl- dom, — 148 King Richard the Third [Act iv King Richard. Richmond ! — When last I was at Exeter, The mayor in courtesy show'd me the castle, And call'd it Rougemont ; at which name I started, Because a bard of Ireland told me once I should not live long after I saw Richmond. Buckingham. My lord, — King Richard. Ay j what 's o'clock ? Buckingham. I am thus bold to put your grace in mind Of what you promis'd me. no King Richard. Well, but whAt 's o'clock? Buckingham. Upon the stroke of ten. King Richard. Well, let it strike. Buckingham. Why let it strike? King Richard. Because that, like a Jack, thou keep'st the stroke Betwixt thy begging and my meditation. I am not in the giving vein to-day. Buckingham. Why, then resolve me whether you will or no. King Richard. Thou trou blest me ; I am not in the vein. \_Exeunt King Richard and Train. Buckingham. And is it thus? repays he my deep service With such contempt ? made I him king for this ? O, let me think on Hastings, and be gone 120 To Brecknock, while my fearful head is on. \_Exit. Scene III] King Richard the Third 149 Scene III. The Same . Enter Tyrrel TyrreL The tyrannous and bloody act is done, The most arch deed of piteous massacre That ever yet this land was guilty of. Dighton and Forrest, whom I did suborn To do this piece of ruthful butchery, Albeit they were flesh'd villains, bloody dogs, Melted with tenderness and mild compassion. Wept like two children in their death's sad story. ' O, thus,' quoth Dighton, ' lay the gentle babes,' — * Thus, thus,' quoth Forrest, ' girdling one another 10 Within their alabaster innocent arms ; Their lips were four red roses on a stalk. And in their summer beauty kiss'd each other. A book of prayers on their pillow lay. Which once,' quoth Forrest, ^ almost chang'd my mind ; But, O, the devil ' — there the villain stopp'd. When Dighton thus told on, — ^ We smothered The most replenished sweet work of Nature That from the prime creation e'er she fram'd.' Hence both are gone with conscience and remorse, 20 They could not speak ; and so I left them both, To bear this tidings to the bloody king. Enter King Richard And here he comes. — All health, my sovereign lord ! King Richard. Kind Tyrrel, am I happy in thy news ? T 50 King Richard the Third [Act iv Tyrrel. If to have done the thing you gave in charge Beget your happiness, be happy then, For it is done. King Richard. But didst thou see them dead? Tyrrel. I did, my lord. King Richard. And buried, gentle Tyrrel ? Tyrrel. The chaplain of the Tower hath buried them But where, to say the truth, I do not know. 30 King Richard. Come to me, Tyrrel, soon at after- supper, When thou shalt tell the process of their death. Meantime, but think how I may do thee good. And be inheritor of thy desire. Farewell till then. Tyrrel. I humbly take my leave. [Exit. King Richard. The son of Clarence have I pent up close ; His daughter meanly have I match'd in marriage ; The sons of Edward sleep in Abraham's bosom. And Anne my wife hath bid this world good night. Now, for I know the Breton Richmond aims 40 At young Elizabeth, my brother's daughter. And by that knot looks proudly on the crown, To her go I, a jolly thriving wooer. Enter Catesby Catesby. My Lord ! — Scene IV] King Richard the Third 151 King Richard. Good or bad news, that thou com'st in so bluntly? Catesby. Bad news, my lord ; Morton is fled to Rich- . mond, And Buckingham, back'd with the hardy Welshmen, Is in the field, and still his power increaseth. King Richard. Ely with Richmond troubles me more near Than Buckingham and his rash-levied strength. 50 Come, I have learned that fearful commenting Is leaden servitor to dull delay ; Delay leads impotent and snail- pac'd beggary. Then fiery expedition be my wing, Jove's Mercury, and herald for a king ! Go, muster men ; my counsel is my shield. We must be brief when traitors brave the field. \_Exeunt. Scene IV. Before the Palace y Enter Queen Margaret Queen Margaret. So, now prosperity begins to mellow And drop into the rotten mouth of death. Here in these confines slyly have I lurk'd. To watch the waning of mine enemies. A dire induction am I witness to. And will to France, hoping the consequence Will prove as bitter, black, and tragical. — Withdraw thee, wretched Margaret; who comes here? \^Retiring. 152 King Richard the Third [Act iv Enter Queen Elizabeth and the Duchess of York Queen Elizabeth. Ah, my poor princes ! ah, my tender babes ! My unblown flowers, new-appearing sweets ! 10 If yet your gentle souls fly in the air And be not fiix'd in doom perpetual, Hover about me with your airy wings And hear your mother's lamentation ! Queen Margaret. Hover about her ; say that right for right Hath dimm'd your infant morn to aged night. Duchess. So many miseries have craz'd my voice That my woe-wearied tongue is still and mute. — Edward Plantagenet, why art thou dead ? Queen Margaret. Plantagenet doth quit Plantagenet, Edward for Edward pays a dying debt. 21 Queen Elizabeth. Wilt thou, O God, fly from such gentle lambs And throw them in the entrails of the wolf ? When didst thou sleep when such a deed was done? Queen Margaret. When holy Harry died, and my sweet son. Duchess. Dead life, bhnd sight, poor mortal living ghost. Woe's scene, world's shame, grave's due by Hfe usurp'd. Brief abstract and record of tedious days. Rest thy unrest on England's lawful earth, \^Sitting down. UnlawfuUy made drunk with innocent blood ! 30 Scene IV] King Richard the Third 153 Queen Elizabeth. Ah, that thou wouldst as soon afford a grave As thou canst yield a melancholy seat ! Then would I hide my bones, not rest them here. Ah, who hath any cause to mourn but we ? \_Sitting down by her. Queen Margaret. If ancient sorrow be most reverent, [^Coming forward. Give mine the benefit of seniory, And let my griefs frown on the upper hand. If sorrow can admit society, \_Sitting down with them. Tell o'er your woes again by viewing mine. — I had an Edward till a Richard kill'd him ; 40 I had a Harry till a Richard kill'd him : Thou hadst an Edward till a Richard kill'd him ; Thou hadst a Richard till a Richard kill'd him. Duchess. I had a Richard too, and thou didst kill him ; I had a Rutland too, thou holp'st to kill him. Queen Margai'-et. Thou hadst a Clarence too, and Richard kill'd him. From forth the kennel of thy womb hath crept A hell-hound that doth hunt us all to death ; That dog that had his teeth before his eyes, To worry lambs and lap their gentle blood, 5q That foul defacer of God's handiwork. That excellent grand tyrant of the earth That reigns in galled eyes of weeping souls. Thy womb let loose to chase us to our graves. — O upright, just, and true-disposing God, 154 ^i"g Richard the Third [Act iv How do I thank thee that this carnal cur Preys on the issue of his mother's body And makes her pew-fellow with others' moan ! Duchess. O, Harry's wife, triumph not in my woes ! God witness with me, I have wept for thine. 60 Queen Margaret. Bear with me ; I am hungry for revenge, And now I cloy me with beholding it. Thy Edward he is dead, that kill'd my Edward ; Thy other Edward dead, to quit my Edward ; Young York he is but boot, because both they Match not the high perfection of my loss. Thy Clarence he is dead, that stabb'd my Edward ; And the beholders of this frantic play. The adulterate Hastings, Rivers, Vaughan, Grey, Untimely smother'd in their dusky graves. 70 Richard yet lives, hell's black intelligencer, Only reserv'd their factor to buy souls And send them thither ; but at hand, at hand. Ensues his piteous and unpitied end. Earth gapes, hell burns, fiends roar, saints pray, To have him suddenly convey'd from hence. — Cancel his bond of life, dear God, I pray, That I may live and say. The dog is dead ! Queen Elizabeth. O, thou didst prophesy the time would come That I should wish for thee to help me curse 80 That bottled spider, that foul bunch-back'd toad ! Queen Margaret. I call'd thee then vain flourish of my fortune ; Scene IV] King Richard the Third 155 I call'd thee then poor shadow, painted queen ; The presentation of but what I was, The flattering index of a direful pageant. One heav'd a-high, to be hurl'd down below ; A mother only mock'd with two fair babes ; A dream of what thou wast ; a garish flag, To be the aim of every dangerous shot ; A sign of dignity, a breath, a bubble ; 90 A queen in jest, only to fill the scene. Where is thy husband now? where be thy brothers? Where be thy two sons? wherein dost thou joy? Who sues, and kneels, and says ' God save the queen ' ? Where be the bending peers that flattered thee? Where be the thronging troops that followed thee? Decline all this, and see what now thou art. For happy wife, a most distressed widow ; For joyful mother, one that wails the name ; For one being sued to, one that humbly sues ; 100 For queen, a very caitifl" crown'd with care ; For one that scorn'd at me, now scorn'd of me ; For one being fear'd of all, now fearing one ; For one commanding all, obey'd of none. Thus hath the course of justice wheel'd about, And left thee but a very prey to time ; Having no more but thought of what thou wast To torture thee the more, being what thou art. Thou didst usurp my place, and dost thou not Usurp the just proportion of my sorrow? no Now thy proud neck bears half my burthen'd yoke, 156 King Richard the Third [Act iv From which even here I slip my wearied head And leave the burthen of it all on thee. Farewell, York's wife, and queen of sad mischance ; These English woes shall make me smile in France. Queen Elizabeth. O thou well skill'd in curses, stay a while And teach me how to curse mine enemies. Queen Margaret, Forbear to sleep the night, and fast the day ; Compare dead happiness with living woe ; Think that thy babes were sweeter than they were, 120 And he that slew them fouler than he is. Bettering thy loss makes the bad causer worse ; Revolving this will teach thee how to curse. Queen Elizabeth. My words are dull ; O, quicken them with thine ! Queen Margaret. Thy woes will make them sharp, and pierce like mine. [Exit Queen Margaret. Duchess. Why should calamity be full of words ? Queen Elizabeth. Windy attorneys to their client woes, Airy succeeders of intestate joys. Poor breathing orators of miseries ! Let them have scope ; though what they will impart 130 Help nothing else, yet do they ease the heart. Duchess. If so, then be not tongue-tied ; go with me, And in the breath of bitter words let 's smother My damned son that thy two sweet sons smother'd. — \_A trumpet heard. The trumpet sounds ; be copious in exclaims. Scene IV] King Richard the Third 157 Enter King Richard and his Train, marching King Richard. Who intercepts me in my expedition? Duchess. O, she that might have intercepted thee, By strangling thee in her accursed womb, From all the slaughters, wretch, that thou hast done. Queen Elizabeth. Hid'st thou that forehead with a golden crown, 140 Where should be branded, if that right were right, The slaughter of the prince that owed that crown. And the dire death of my poor sons and brothers? Tell me, thou villain slave, where are my children? Duchess. Thou toad, thou toad, where is thy brother Clarence, And little Ned Plantagenet, his son ? Queen Elizabeth. Where is the gentle Rivers, Vaughan, Grey? Duchess. Where is kind Hastings? Ki7ig Richard. A flourish, trumpets ! — strike alarum, drums ! Let not the heavens hear these tell-tale women 150 Rail on the Lord's anointed. Strike, I say ! — \_Elourish. Alarums. Either be patient and entreat me fair. Or with the clamorous report of war Thus will I drown your exclamations. Duchess. Art thou my son? King Richard. Ay, I thank God, my father, and yourself. 158 King Richard the Third [Act IV Duchess. Then patiently hear my impatience. King Richard. Madam, I have a touch of your con- dition, That cannot brook the accent of reproof. Duchess. O, let me speak. King Richard. Do, then ; but I '11 not hear. Duchess. I will be mild and gentle in my words. 161 King Richard. And brief, good mother, for I am in haste. Duchess. Art thou so hasty ? I have stay'd for thee, God knows, in torment and in agony. King Richard. And came I not at last to comfort you ? Duchess. No, by the holy rood, thou know'st it well, Thou cam'st on earth to make the earth my hell. A grievous burthen was thy birth to me. Tetchy and wayward was thy infancy ; Thy school-days frightful, desperate, wild, and furious ; 170 Thy prime of manhood daring, bold, and venturous ; Thy age confirm'd, proud, subtle, sly, and bloody, More mild but yet more harmful, kind in hatred. What comfortable hour canst thou name That ever grac'd me with thy company ? King Richard. Faith, none, but Humphrey Hour, that call'd your grace To breakfast once forth of my company. If I be so disgracious in your eye. Let me march on and not offend you, madam. — Strike up the drum ! Duchess. I prithee hear me speak. 180 Scene IV] King Richard the Third 159 King Richard. You speak too bitterly. Duchess. Hear me a word ; For I shall never speak to thee again. King Richard. So. Duchess. Either thou wilt die by God's just ordinance Ere from this war thou turn a conqueror, Or I with grief and extreme age shall perish And never more behold thy face again. Therefore take with thee my most grievous curse, Which in the day of battle tire thee more Than all the complete armour that thou wear'st ! igo My prayers on the adverse party fight, And there the httle souls of Edward's children Whisper the spirits of thine enemies And promise them success and victory. Bloody thou art, bloody will be thy end ; Shame serves thy life, and doth thy death attend. \_Exit. Queen Elizabeth. Though far more cause, yet much less spirit to curse Abides in me ; I say amen to her. [ Going. King Richard. Stay, madam, I must talk a word with you. Queen Elizabeth. I have no more sons of the royal blood 200 For thee to slaughter ; for my daughters, Richard, They shall be praying nuns, not weeping queens, And therefore level not to hit their lives. King Richard. You have a daughter call'd Elizabeth, Virtuous and fair, royal and gracious. i6o King Richard the Third [Act IV Queen Elizabeth. And must she die for this? O, let her Uve, And I '11 corrupt her manners, stain her beauty, Slander myself as false to Edward's bed, Throw over her the veil of infamy ! So she may live unscarr'd of bleeding slaughter, 210 I will confess she was not Edward's daughter. King Richard. Wrong not her birth ; she is a royal princess. Queen Elizabeth. To save her life, I '11 say she is not so. King Richard. Her life is safest only in her birth. Queen Elizabeth. And only in that safety died her brothers. King Richard. Lo, at their birth good stars were op- posite. Queen Elizabeth. No, to their lives ill friends were contrary. King Richard. All unavoided is the doom of destiny. Queefi Elizabeth. True, when avoided grace makes destiny. My babes were destin'd to a fairer death, 220 If grace has bless'd thee with a fairer life. King Richard. You speak as if that I had slain my cousins. Queen Elizabeth. Cousins, indeed; and by their uncle cozen'd Of comfort, kingdom, kindred, freedom, life. Whose hand soever lanc'd their tender hearts, Thy head, all indirectly, gave direction. Scene IV] King Richard the Third i6i No doubt the murtherous knife was dull and blunt Till it was whetted on thy stone-hard heart To revel in the entrails of my lambs. But that still use of grief makes wild grief tame, 230 My tongue should to thy ears not name my boys Till that my nails were anchor'd in thine eyes, And I, in such a desperate bay of death, Like a poor bark, of sails and tackling reft, Rush all to pieces on thy rocky bosom. Ki7ig Richard. Madam, so thrive I in my enterprise And dangerous success of bloody wars As I intend more good to you and yours Than ever you or yours by me were harm'd ! Queen Elizabeth. What good is cover'd with the face of heaven, 240 To be discover'd, that can do me good? King Richard. The advancement of your children, gentle lady. Queen Elizabeth. Up to some scaffold, there to lose their heads? King Richard. Unto the dignity and height of fortune, The high imperial type of this earth's glory. Queen Elizabeth. Flatter my sorrow with report of it ; Tell me what state, what dignity, what honour, Canst thou demise to any child of mine? King Richard. Even all I have ; ay, and myself and all, Will I withal endow a child. of thine, 250 So in the Lethe of thy angry soul RICHARD III. — II 1 62 King Richard the Third [Act iv Thou drown the sad remembrance of those wrongs Which thou supposest I have done to thee. Queen Elizabeth. Be brief, lest that the process of thy kindness Last longer telling than thy kindness' date. King Richard. Then know that from my soul I love thy daughter. Queen Elizabeth. My daughter's mother thinks it with her soul. King Richard. What do you think ? Queen Elizabeth. That thou dost love my daughter from thy soul. So from thy soul's love didst thou love her brothers ; 260 And from my heart's love I do thank thee for it. King Richard. Be not so hasty to confound my meaning. I mean that with my soul I love thy daughter And do intend to make her queen of England. Queen Elizabeth. Well, then, who dost thou mean shall be her king? King Richard. Even he that makes her queen ; who else should be? Queen Elizabeth. What, thou? King Richard. Even so ; how think you of it? Queen Elizabeth. How canst thou woo her? King Richard. That I would learn of you, As one being best acquainted with her humour. 270 Queen Elizabeth. And wilt thou learn of me ? King Richard. Madam, with all my heart. Scene IV] King Richard the Third 163 Queen Elizabeth. Send to her, by the man that slew her brothers, A pair of bleeding hearts ; thereon engrave Edward and York ; then haply will she weep. Therefore present to her — as sometime Margaret Did to thy father, steep'd in Rutland's blood — A handkerchief, which, say to her, did drain The purple sap from her sweet brothers' bodies, And bid her wipe her weeping eyes withal. 280 If this inducement move her not to love, Send her a letter of thy noble deeds. Tell her thou mad'st away her uncle Clarence, Her uncle Rivers ; ay, and for her sake, Mad'st quick conveyance with her good aunt Anne. King Richard. You mock me, madam ; this is not the way To win your daughter. Queen Elizabeth. There is no other way Unless thou couldst put on some other shape And not be Richard that hath done all this. King Richard. Say that I did all this for love of her ? 290 Queeft Elizabeth. Nay, then indeed she cannot choose but love thee. Having bought love with such a bloody spoil. Kijtg Richard. Look, what is done cannot be now amended ; Men shall deal unadvisedly sometimes, Which after-hours give leisure to repent. 164 K^i"g Richard the Third [Act IV If I did take the kingdom from your sons, To make amends I '11 give it to your daughter. If I have kill'd the issue of your womb, To quicken your increase I will beget Mine issue of your blood upon your daughter. 300 A grandam's name is little less in love Than is the doting title of a mother. They are as children but one step below, Even of your mettle, of your very blood, Of all one pain, save for a night of groans Endur'd of her for whom you bid like sorrow. Your children were vexation to your youth, But mine shall be a comfort to your age. The loss you have is but a son, being king. And by that loss your daughter is made queen. 310 I cannot make you what amends I would, Therefore accept such kindness as I can. Dorset your son, that with a fearful soul Leads discontented steps in foreign soil, This fair alliance quickly shall call home To high promotions and great dignity. The king that calls your beauteous daughter wife Familiarly shall call thy Dorset brother ; Again shall you be mother to a king. And all the ruins of distressful times 320 Repair'd with double riches of content. ■ What ! we have many goodly days to see ; The liquid drops of tears that you have shed Shall come again transform'd to orient pearl, Scene IV] King Richard the Third 165 Advantaging their loan with interest Of ten-times-double gain of happiness. Go, then, my mother, to thy daughter go ; Make bold her bashful years with your experience ; Prepare her ears to hear a wooer's tale ; Put in her tender heart the aspiring flame 330 Of golden sovereignty; acquaint the princess With the sweet silent hours of marriage joys ; And when this arm of mine hath chastised The petty rebel, dull-brain'd Buckingham, Bound with triumphant garlands will I come And lead thy daughter to a conqueror's bed, To whom I will retail my conquest won, . And she shall be sole victress, Caesar's Caesar. I Quee7t Elizabeth. What were I best to say? her fa- ther's brother Would be her lord ? Or shall I say her uncle ? 340 Or he that slew her brothers and her uncles? Under what title shall I woo for thee That God, the law, my honour, and her love Can make seem pleasing to her tender years? King Richard. Infer fair England's peace by this alli- ance. Queen Elizabeth. Which she shall purchase with still- lasting war. King Richard. Tell her the king, that may command, entreats. Queen Elizabeth. That at her hands which the king's King forbids. 1 66 King Richard the Third [Act iv King Richard. Say she shall be a high and mighty queen. Queen Elizabeth. To wail the title as her mother doth. 350 King Richai'd. Say I will love her everlastingly. Queen Elizabeth. But how long shall that title ' ever ' last? King Richard. Sweetly in force unto her fair life's end. Quee7i Elizabeth. But how long fairly shall her sweet life last? King Richard. As long as heaven and nature length- ens it. Queen Elizabeth. As long as hell and Richard likes of it. King Richard. Say I, her sovereign, am her subject low. Queen Elizabeth. But she, your subject, loathes such sovereignty. King Richard. Be eloquent in my behalf to her. Queen Elizabeth. An honest tale speeds best being plainly told. 360 King Richard. Then plainly to her tell my loving tale. Queen Elizabeth. Plain, and not honest, is too harsh a style. King Richard. Your reasons are too shallow and too quick. Queen Elizabeth. O, no, my reasons are too deep and dead, — Too deep and dead, poor infants, in their graves. Scene IV] King Richard the Third 167 King Richard. Harp not on that string, madam; that is past. Queen Elizabeth. Harp on it still shall I till heart- strings break. King Richard. Now, by my George, my garter, and my crown, — Queen Elizabeth. Profan'd, dishonour'd, and the third usurp'd. King Richard. I swear — Queen Elizabeth. By nothing ; for this is no oath. Thy George, profan'd, hath lost his lordly honour ; 371 Thy garter, blemish'd, pawn'd his knightly virtue ; Thy crown, usurp'd, disgrac'd his kingly glory. If something thou wouldst swear to be behev'd. Swear then by something that thou hast not wrong'd. King Richard. Then by myself, — Queen Elizabeth. Thyself is self-misus'd. King Richard. Now by the world, — Queen Elizabeth. 'T is full of thy foul wrongs. King Richard. My father's death, — Queen Elizabeth. Thy life hath it dishonour'd. King Richard. Why, then, by God, — Queen Elizabeth. God's wrong is most of all. If thou hadst fear'd to break an oath by Him, 380 The unity of the king my husband made Thou hadst not broken, nor my brother slain. If thou hadst fear'd to break an oath by Him, The imperial metal, circling now thy head, Had grac'd the tender temples of my child ; 1 68 King Richard the Third [Act IV And both the princes had been breathing here Which now, two tender bedfellows for dust, Thy broken faith hath made the prey for worms. What canst thou swear by now? Ki7ig Richard. The time to come. Queen Elizabeth. That thou hast wronged in the time o'erpast ; 390 For I myself have many tears to wash Hereafter time, for time past wrong'd by thee. The children live whose fathers thou hast slaughter'd, Ungovern'd youth, to wail it with their age ; The parents live whose children thou hast butcher'd, Old barren plants, to wail it with their age. Swear not by time to come ; for that thou hast Misus'd ere us'd, by times ill-us'd o'erpast. King Richard. As I intend to prosper and repent, So thrive I in my dangerous affairs 400 Of hostile arms ! myself myself confound ! Heaven and fortune bar me happy hours ! Day, yield me not thy light, nor, night, thy rest ! Be opposite all planets of good luck To my proceeding, if, with dear heart's love. Immaculate devotion, holy thoughts, I tender not thy beauteous princely daughter ! In her consists my happiness and thine ; Without her follows to myself and thee. Herself, the land, and many a Christian soul, 410 Death, desolation, ruin, and decay. It cannot be avoided but by this ; / Scene IV] King Richard the Third 169 It will not be avoided but by this. Therefore, dear mother, — I must call you so, — Be the attorney of my love to her. Plead what I will be, not what I have been ; Not my deserts, but what I will deserve ; Urge the necessity and state of times. And be not peevish found in great designs. Queen Elizabeth. Shall I be tempted of the devil thus? King Richard. Ay, if the devil tempts thee to do good. 421 Queen Elizabeth. Shall I forget myself to be myself ? King Richard. Ay, if your self s remembrance wrong yourself. Queen Elizabeth. Shall I go win my daughter to thy will? King Richard. And be a happy mother by the deed. Queen Elizabeth. I go. — Write to me very shortly, And you shall understand from me her mind. King Richard. Bear her my true love's kiss, and so farewell. — \^Exit Queen Elizabeth. Relenting fool, and shallow, changing woman ! — How now ! what news ? 430 Enter Ratcliff, Catesby following Ratcliff. Most mighty sovereign, on the western coast Rideth a puissant navy ; to our shores Throng many doubtful hollow-hearted friends, Unarm'd and unresolv'd to beat them back. 'T is thought that Richmond is their admiral \ lyo King Richard the Third [Act iv And there they hull, expecting but the aid Of Buckingham to welcome them ashore. King Richard. Some light-foot friend post to the Duke of Norfolk ; — Ratchff, thyself, — or Catesby; where is he? 439 Catesby. Here, my good lord. King Richard. Catesby, fly to the duke. Catesby. I will, my lord, with all convenient haste. King Richard. Ratcliff, come hither. Post to Salisbury ; When thou com'st thither, — Dull, unmindful villain, \To Catesby. Why stay'st thou here, and go'st not to the duke? Catesby. First, mighty liege, tell me your highness' pleasure, What from your grace I shall deliver to him. King Richard. O, true, good Catesby. — Bid him levy straight The greatest strength and power he can make, And meet me suddenly at Salisbury. 449 Catesby. I go. ^^Exit. Ratcliff. What, may it please you, shall I do at Salisbury ? King Richard. Why, what wouldst thou do there be- fore I go? Ratcliff. Your highness told me I should post before. Enter Stanley King Richard. My mind is chang'd. — Stanley, what news with you? / Scene ivj King Richard the Third 171 Stanley. None good, my liege, to please you with the hearing ; Nor none so bad but well may be reported. King Richard. Heyday, a riddle ! neither good nor bad? What need'st thou run so many miles about When thou mayst tell thy tale the nearest way ? Once more, what news? Stanley. Richmond is on the seas. 460 King Richard. There let him sink, and be the seas on him, White-liver'd runagate ! — What doth he there? Stanley. I know not, mighty sovereign, but by guess. King Richard. Well, as you guess ? Stanley. Stirr'd up by Dorset, Buckingham, and Morton, He makes for England, here to claim the crown. King Richard. Is the chair empty ? is the sword unsway'd ? Is the king dead? the empire unpossess'd? What heir of York is there alive but we? And who is England's king but great York's heir? 470 Then, tell me, what makes he upon the seas? Stanley. Unless for that, my liege, I cannot guess. King Richard. Unless for that he comes to be your liege, You cannot guess wherefore the Welshman comes ? Thou wilt revolt and fly to him, I fear. Stanley. No, my good lord ; therefore mistrust me not. 172 K^i^g Richard the Third [Act IV King Richard. Where is thy power then to beat him back? Where be thy tenants and thy followers? Are they not now upon the western shore, Safe-conducting the rebels from their ships? 480 Stanley. No, my good lord, my friends are in the north. King Richard. Cold friends to me ! What do they in the north When they should serve their sovereign in the west? Stanley. They have not been commanded, mighty king. Pleaseth your majesty to give me leave, I '11 muster up my friends and meet your grace Where and what time your majesty shall please. King Richard. Ay, thou wouldst be gone to join with Richmond ; But I '11 not trust thee. Stanley. Most mighty sovereign. You have no cause to hold my friendship doubtful. 490 I never was nor never will be false. King Richard. Go, then, and muster men ; but leave behind Your son, George Stanley. Look your heart be firm, Or else his head's assurance is but frail. Stanley. So deal with him as I prove true to you. \_Exit Stanley. Enter a Messenger Messenger. My gracious sovereign, now in Devonshire, / / Scene IV] King Richard the Third 173 As I by friends am well advertised, Sir Edward Courtney and the haughty prelate, Bishop of Exeter, his elder brother, With many moe confederates, are in arms. 500 Enter another Messenger 2 Messenger. In Kent, my liege, the Guildfords are in arms ; And every hour more competitors Flock to the rebels, and their power grows strong. Enter a third Messenger 3 Messenger. My lord, the army of great Bucking- ham — King Richard. Out on ye, owls ! nothing but songs of death? \^He strikes him. There, take thou that, till thou bring better news. 3 Messenger. The news I have to tell your majesty Is that by sudden floods and fall of waters Buckingham's army is dispers'd and scatter'd, And he himself wander'd away alone, 510 No man knows whither. King Richard. I cry thee mercy ; There is my purse to cure that blow of thine. Hath any well-advised friend proclaim'd Reward to him that brings the traitor in? 3 Messenger. Such proclamation hath been made, my lord. 174 Ki^g Richard the Third [Act iv Enter a fourth Messenger 4 Messenger. Sir Thomas Lovel and Lord Marquis Dorset, 'T is said, my liege, in Yorkshire are in arms ; But this good comfort bring I to your highness, — The Breton navy is dispers'd by tempest. Richmond, in Dorsetshire, sent out a boat 520 Unto the shore, to ask those on the banks If they were his assistants, yea or no, Who answer'd him, they came from Buckingham Upon his party ; he, mistrusting them, Hois'd sail and made his course again for Bretagne. King Richard. March on, march on, since we are up in arms j If not to fight with foreign enemies, Yet to beat down these rebels here at home. Enter Catesby Gates by. My liege, the Duke of Buckingham is taken. That is the best news ; that the Earl of Richmond 530 Is with a mighty power landed at Milford Is colder news, but yet they must be told. King Richard. Away towards SaHsbury ! while we reason here A royal battle might be won and lost. — Some one take order Buckingham be brought To Salisbury j the rest march on with me. \_Exeu7it. Scene V] King Richard the Third 175 Scene V. Lord Stanley's House Enter Stanley and Sir Christopher Urswick Stanley. Sir Christopher, tell Richmond this from me, — That in the sty of the most deadly boar My son George Stanley is frank'd up in hold. If I revolt, off goes young George's head ; The fear of that holds off my present aid. So, get thee gone ; commend me to thy lord. Withal, say that the queen hath heartily consented He should espouse Elizabeth her daughter. But, tell me, where is princely Richmond now? Christopher. At Pembroke, or at Hertford West, in Wales. 10 Stanley. What men of name resort to him ? Christopher. Sir Walter Herbert, a renowned soldier ; Sir Gilbert Talbot, Sir WilHam Stanley ; Oxford, redoubted Pembroke, Sir James Blunt, And Rice ap Thomas, with a valiant crew, And many other of great name and worth ; And towards London do they bend their power, If by the way they be not fought withal. Stanley. Well, hie thee to thy lord ; I kiss his hand. My letter will resolve him of my mind. 20 Farewell. \_Exeunt. Tamworth Castle ACT V Scene I. Salisbury. An Open Place Enter the Sheriff and Guard, with Buckingham, led to execution Buckingham. Will not King Richard let me speak with him? Sheriff. No, my good lord ; therefore be patient. Buckingham. Hastings, and Edward's children. Grey, and Rivers, Holy King Henry, and thy fair son Edward, Vaughan, and all that have miscarried 176 ^ Scene I] King Richard the Third 177 By underhand corrupted foul injustice, If that your moody discontented souls Do through the clouds behold this present hour, Even for revenge mock my destruction ! — This is All-Souls' day, fellow, is it not? 10 Sheriff. It is. Buckingham. Why, then All-Souls' day is my body's doomsday. This is the day which, in King Edward's time, I wish'd might fall on me when I was found False to his children or his wife's allies ; This is the day wherein I wish'd to fall By the false faith of him whom most I trusted ; This, this All-Souls' day to my fearful soul Is the determin'd respite of my wrongs. That high All-Seer which I dallied with 20 Hath turn'd my feigned prayer on my head, And given in earnest what I begg'd in jest. Thus doth he force the swords of wicked men To turn their own points in their masters' bosoms ; Thus Margaret's curse falls heavy on my neck : ' When he,' quoth she, ^ shall split thy heart with sorrow. Remember Margaret was a prophetess.' — Come, lead me, officers, to the block of shame ; Wrong hath but wrong, and blame the due of blame. \_JSxeunt Buckingham and Officers. RICHARD III. — 12 lyS King Richard the Third [Act V Scene II. A Plain near Tamworth Enter Richmond, Oxford, Blunt, Herbert^ and others^ with drum and colours Richmond. Fellows in arms, and my most loving friends, Bruis'd underneath the yoke of tyranny, Thus far into the bowels of the land Have we march'd on without impediment ; And here receive we from our father Stanley Lines of fair comfort and encouragement. The wretched, bloody, and usurping boar. That spoil'd your summer fields and fruitful vines. Swills your warm blood like wash and makes his trough In your embowell'd bosoms, — this foul swine lo Is now even in the centre of this isle, Near to the town of Leicester, as we learn ; From Tamworth thither is but one day's march. In God's name, cheerly on, courageous friends, To reap the harvest of perpetual peace By this one bloody trial of sharp war. Oxford. Every man's conscience is a thousand men. To fight against this guilty homicide. Herbert. I doubt not but his friends will turn to us. Blunt. He hath no friends but what are friends for fear, 20 Which in his dearest need will fly from him. •■ ■ / Scene III] King Richard the Third 179 Richmond. All for our vantage. Then, in God's name, march. True hope is swift and flies with swallow's wings ; Kings it makes gods, and meaner creatures kings. • \_Exeunt. Scene III. Bosworth Field Enter King Richard /;/ arms., with Norfolk, Surrey, and others King Richard. Here pitch our tents, even here in Bosworth field. — My Lord of Surrey, why look you so sad ? Surrey. My heart is ten times lighter than my looks. King Richard. My Lord of Norfolk, — Norfolk. Here, most gracious liege. King Richard. Norfolk, we must have knocks ; ha ! must we not? Norfolk. We must both give and take, my loving lord. King Richard. Up with my tent ! here will I lie to- night ; — \_Soldiers begi?t to set up the King's tent. But where to-morrow ? — Well, all 's one for that. — Who hath descried the number of the traitors? 9 Norfolk. Six or seven thousand is their utmost power. King Richard. Why, our battalia trebles that account ; Besides, the king's name is a tower of strength, Which they upon the adverse faction want. — Up with the tent ! — Come, noble gentlemen. Let us survey the vantage of the ground. — T 80 K.ing Richard the Third [Act v Call for some men of sound direction. — Let 's lack no discipline, make no delay, For, lords, to-morrow is a busy day. \_Exeunt. Enter, on the other side of the field, Richmond, Sir William Brandon, Blunt, Oxford, and others. Some of the Soldiers pitch Richmond's tent Richmond. The weary sun hath made a golden set. And by the bright track of his fiery car 20 Gives token of a goodly day to-morrow. — Sir William Brandon, you shall bear my standard. — Give me some ink and paper in my tent ; I '11 draw the form and model of our battle, Limit each leader to his several charge. And part in just proportion our small power. — My Lord of Oxford, — you. Sir Wilham Brandon, — And you, Sir Walter Herbert, stay with me. — The Earl of Pembroke keeps his regiment ; Good Captain Blunt, bear my good night to him, 30 And by the second hour in the morning Desire the earl to see me in my tent. — Yet one thing more, good captain, do for me; Where is Lord Stanley quarter'd? do you know? Blunt. Unless I have mista'en his colours much, — Which well I am assur'd I have not done, — His regiment lies half a mile at least South from the mighty power of the king. Richmond. If without peril it be possible, / Scene III] King Richard the Third i8i Sweet Blunt, make some good means to speak with him, And give him from me this most needful note. 41 Blunt. Upon my life, my lord, I '11 undertake it ; And so, God give you quiet rest to-night ! Richmond. Good night, good Captain Blunt. — Cortie, gentlemen. Let us consult upon to-morrow's business. In to my tent ! the dew is raw and cold. \They withdraw into the tent. Enter, to his tent, King Richard, Norfolk, Ratcliff, and Catesby King Richard. What is 't o'clock ? Catesby. It 's supper time, my lord ; It 's nine o'clock. King Richard. I will not sup to-night. — Give me some ink and paper. — What, is my beaver easier than it was ? 50 And all my armour laid into my tent ? Catesby. It is, my liege ; and all things are in readi- ness. King Richard. Good Norfolk, hie thee to thy charge. Use careful watch, choose trusty sentinels. Norfolk. I go, my lord. King Richard. Stir with the lark to-morrow, gentle Norfolk. Norfolk. I warrant you, my lord. \_Exit. King Richard. Catesby ! Catesby. My lord? 1 82 King Richard the Third . [Act V King Richard. Send out a pursuivant-at-arms To Stanley's regiment ; bid him bring his power 60 Before sun-rising, lest his son George fall Into the blind cave of eternal night. — \^Exit Catesby. Fill me a bowl of wine. — Give me a watch. — Saddle white Surrey for the field to-morrow. — Look that my staves be sound, and not too heavy. — Ratcliff ! — Ratdiff. My lord? King Richard. Saw'st thou the melancholy Lord Northumberland ? Ratcliff. Thomas the Earl of Surrey, and himself. Much about cock-shut time, from troop to troop 70 Went through the army, cheering up the soldiers. King Richard. So ; I am satisfied. Give me a bowl of wine ; I have not that alacrity of spirit. Nor cheer of mind, that I was wont to have. — Set it down. — Is ink and paper ready? Ratcliff. It is, my lord. King Richard. Bid my guard watch. Leave me. — Ratcliff, about the raid of night come to my tent And help to arm me. — Leave me, I say. \_Exeunt Ratcliff and the other Attendants. Enter Stanley to Richmond in his tent, Lords and others attending Stanley. Fortune and victory sit on thy helm ! 80 Richmond. All comfort that the dark night can afford Scene III] King Richard the Third 183 Be to thy person, noble father-in-law ! Tell me how fares our lovmg mother? Stanley. I, by attorney, bless thee from thy mother, Who prays continually for Richmond's good ; So much for that. — The silent hours steal on, And flaky darkness breaks within the east. In brief, for so the season bids us be, Prepare thy battle early in the morning, And put thy fortune to the arbitrement 90 Of bloody strokes and mortal-staring war, I, as I may, — that which I would I cannot, — With best advantage will deceive the time. And aid thee in this doubtful shock of arms ; But on thy side I may not be too forward, Lest, being seen, thy brother, tender George, Be executed in his father's sight. Farewell. The leisure and the fearful time Cuts off the ceremonious vows of love And ample interchange of sweet discourse too Which so long sunder'd friends should dwell upon. God give us leisure for these rites of love ! Once more adieu. Be valiant, and speed wdl ! Richmond. Good lords, conduct him to his regiment. I '11 strive, with troubled thoughts, to take a nap, Lest leaden slumber peize me down to-morrow When I should mount with wings of victory. Once more good night, kind lords and gentlemen. — \_Exeunt all but Richmond. O thou, whose captain I account myself, 1 84 King Richard the Third [Act V Look on my forces with a gracious eye ! no Put in their hands thy bruising irons of wrath, That they may crush down with a heavy fall The usurping helmets of our adversaries ! Make us thy ministers of chastisement, That we may praise thee in thy victory ! To thee I do commend my watchful soul, Ere I let fall the windows of mine eyes ; Sleeping and waking, O, defend me still ! \_Sleeps. The Ghost of Prince Edward, son to Henry the Sixth, appears between the two tents Ghost. \To Richard~\ Let me sit heavy on thy soul to-morrow ! Think how thou stabb'dst me in my prime of youth 120 At Tewkesbury ; despair, therefore, and die ! — \_To Richmond'^ Be cheerful, Richmond, for the wronged souls Of butcher'd princes fight in thy behalf; King Henry's issue, Richmond, comforts thee. The Ghost of Henry the Sixth appears Ghost. \^To Richard'\ When I was mortal, my anointed body By thee was punched full of deadly holes. Think on the Tower and me ; despair and die ! Harry the Sixth bids thee despair and die. — \To Richmond^ Virtuous and holy, be thpu conqueror ! / i Scene III] King Richard the Third 185 Harry, that prophesied thou shouldst be king, 130 Doth comfort thee in sleep ; live and flourish ! The Ghost of Clarence appears Ghost. [To Richard'\ Let me sit heavy on thy soul to-morrow ! I, that was wash'd to death with fulsome wine, Poor Clarence, by thy guile betray'd to death ! To-morrow in the battle think on me. And fall thy edgeless sword ! Despair and die ! — \To Richmond\ Thou offspring of the house of Lan- caster, The wronged heirs of York do pray for thee ; Good angels guard thy battle ! Live and flourish ! The Ghosts of Rivers, Grey, and Vaughan appear Rivers. [To Rtchard~\ Let me sit heavy on thy soul to-morrow, 140 Rivers, that died at Pomfret ! Despair and die ! Grey. [To Richard'\ Think upon Grey, and let thy soul despair ! Vaughan. [To Richard']^ Think upon Vaughan, and with guilty fear Let fall thy lance ! Despair and die ! All. [To Richmond'] Awake ! and think our wrongs in Richard's bosom Will conquer him, Awake^ and win the day ! 1 86 King Richard the Third [Act v The Ghost of Hastings appears Ghost. [To Richard^ Bloody and guilty, guiltily awake, And in a bloody battle end thy days ! Think on Lord Hastings ! Despair and die ! — \To Richmond'\ Quiet untroubled soul, awake, awake ! 150 Arm, fight, and conquer, for fair England's sake ! The Ghosts of the two young Princes appear Ghosts. Dream on thy cousins smother'd in the Tower ; Let us be lead within thy bosom, Richard, And weigh thee down to ruin, shame, and death ! Thy nephews' souls bid thee despair and die ! — Sleep, Richmond, sleep in peace and wake in joy ; Good angels guard thee from the boar's annoy ! Live and beget a happy race of kings ! Edward's unhappy sons do bid thee flourish. The Ghost of Queen Anne appears Ghost. Richard, thy wife, that wretched Anne, thy wife, 160 That never slept a quiet hour with thee, Now fills thy sleep with perturbations ; To-morrow in the battle think on me, And fall thy edgeless sword ! Despair and die ! — \To Richmond'] Thou, quiet soul, sleep thou a quiet sleep ; Scene iiij King Richard the Third 187 Dream of success and happy victory ! Thy adversary's wife doth pray for thee. The Ghost of Buckingham appears Ghost. [To Richard^^ The first was I that help'd thee to the crown ; The last was I that felt thy tyranny. O, in the battle think on Buckingham, 170 And die in terror of thy guiltiness ! Dream on, dream on, of bloody deeds and death : Fainting, despair ; despairing, yield thy breath ! — \To Richmond^ I died for hope ere I could lend thee aid ; But cheer thy heart, and be thou not dismay'd ! God and good angels fight on Richmond's side ; And Richard fall in height of all his pride ! [The Ghosts vanish. King Richard starts out of his d^'eani. King Richard. Give me another horse ! — bind up my wounds ! — Have mercy, Jesu ! — Soft ! I did but dream. — O, coward conscience, how dost thou afflict me ! — 180 The lights burn blue. — It is now dead midnight. Cold fearful drops stand on my trembling flesh. What, do I fear myself ? there 's none else by. Richard loves Richard ; that is, I am I. Is there a murtherer here ? No. — Yes, I am. Then fly. — What, from myself ? Great reason why, — Lest I revenge. What ! myself upon myself ? 1 88 King Richard the Third [ActV Alack, I love myself. Wherefore ? for any good That I myself have done unto myself ? O, no ! alas, I rather hate myself 190 For hateful deeds committed by myself ! I am a villain ; yet I lie, I am not. Fool, of thyself speak well. — Fool, do not flatter. My conscience hath a thousand several tongues, And every tongue brings in a several tale, And every tale condemns me for a villain. Perjury, perjury, in the high'st degree, Murther, stern murther, in the dir'st degree, All several sins, all us'd in each degree, Throng to the bar, crying all ' Guilt)^ ! guilty ! ' 200 I shall despair. — There is no creature loves me ; And if I die, no soul shall pity me. — Nay, wherefore should they, since that I myself Find in myself no pity to myself ? Methought the souls of all that I had murther'd Came to my tent, and every one did threat To-morrow's vengeance on the head of Richard. Enter Ratcliff Ratdiff. My lord, — King Richard. Who 's there ? Ratdiff. Ratcliff, my lord ; 't is I. The early village cock 210 Hath twice done salutation to the morn ; Your friends are up and buckle on their armour. Scene III] King Richard the Third 189 King Richard. O Ratcliff ! I have dream 'd a fearful dream. — What thinkest thou ? will our friends prove all true ? Ratcliff. No doubt, my lord. King Richard. O Ratcliff! I fear, I fear, — Ratcliff, Nay, good my lord, be not afraid of shadows. King Richard, By the apostle Paul, shadows to-night Have struck more terror to the soul of Richard Than can the substance of ten thousand soldiers, A.rmed in proof, and led by shallow Richmond. 220 It is not yet near day. Come, go with me ; Under our tents I '11 play the eavesdropper. To hear if any mean to shrink from me. \Exeunt. Enter Oxford and others to Richmond in his tent Lords. Good morrow, Richmond. Richmond. Cry mercy, lords, and watchful gentlemen, That you have ta'en a tardy sluggard here. Lords. How have you slept, my lord ? Richmond. The sweetest sleep, and fairest-boding dreams That ever enter'd in a drowsy head, Have I since your departure had, my lords. 230 Methought their souls whose bodies Richard murther'd Came to my tent and cried on victory ! I promise you my heart is very jocund In the remembrance of so fair a dream. How far into the morning is it, lords ? 190 King Richard the Third [Act v Lords. Upon the stroke of four. Richmond. Why, then, 't is time to arm and give direction. — \He advances to the troops. More than I have said, loving countrymen, The leisure and enforcement of the time Forbids to dwell on ; yet remember this, — 240 God and our good cause fight upon our side. The prayers of holy saints and wronged souls, Like high-rear'd bulwarks, stand before our faces. Richard except, those w^hom we fight against Had rather have us win than him they follow. For what is he they follow ? truly, gentlemen, A bloody tyrant and a homicide ; One rais'd in blood, and one in blood establish'd ; One that made means to come by what he hath. And slaughter'd those that were the means to help him ; 250 A base foul stone, made precious by the foil Of England's chair, where he is falsely set; One that hath ever been God's enemy. Then, if you fight against God's enemy, God will in justice ward you as his soldiers. If you do sweat to put a tyrant down, You sleep in peace, the tyrant being slain ; If you do fight against your country's foes. Your country's fat shall pay your pains the hire ; If you do fight in safeguard of your wives, 260 Your wives shall welcome home the conquerors ; If you do free your children from the sword, Scene III] King Richard the Third 191 Your children's children quit it in your age. Then, in the name of God and all these rights, Advance your standards, draw your willing swords. For me, the ransom of my bold attempt Shall be this cold corpse on the earth's cold face ; But if I thrive, the gain of my attempt The least of you shall share his part thereof. — Sound, drums and trumpets, boldly and cheerfully ; 270 God and Saint George ! Richmond and victory ! \_Exeunt. Enter King Richard, Ratcliff, Attendants, and Forces King Richard. What said Northumberland as touch- ing Richmond? Ratcliff. That he was never trained up in arms. King Richard. He said the truth ; and what said Sur- rey then? Ratcliff. He smil'd and said, the better for our pur- pose. King Richard. He was i' the right; and so, indeed, it is. — \Clock strikes. Tell the clock there. — Give me a calendar. — Who saw the sun to-day? Ratcliff. Not I, my lord. King Richard. Then he disdains to shine, for by the book He should have brav'd the east an hour ago ; 280 A black day will it be to somebody. — Ratcliff, — 192 K.ij^g Richard the Third [Actv Ratdiff. My lord? King Richard. The sun will not be seen to- day; The sky doth frown and lower upon our army. I would these dewy tears were from the ground. Not shme to-day ! Why, what is that to me More than to Richmond? for the selfsame heaven That frowns on me looks sadly upon him. Eiiter Norfolk Norfolk. Arm, arm, my lord ! the foe vaunts in the field. King Richard. Come, bustle, bustle. — Caparison my horse. — 290 Call up Lord Stanley, bid him bring his power. I will lead forth my soldiers to the plain, And thus my battle shall be ordered : My foreward shall be drawn out all in length, Consisting equally of horse and foot ; Our archers shall be placed in the midst. John Duke of Norfolk, Thomas Earl of Surrey, Shall have the leading of the foot and horse. They thus directed, we will follow In the main battle, whose puissance on either side 300 Shall be well winged with our chiefest horse. This, and Saint George to boot! — What think'st thou, Norfolk? Norfolk. A good direction, warlike sovereign. — This found I on my tent this morning. [ Giving a sc?vll. Scene III] King Richard the Third 193 King Richard. [Reads] '/ocky of Norfolk, be not so bold, For Dickon thy master is bought and sold.^ — A thing devised by the enemy. — Go, gentlemen, every man to his charge. Let not our babbling dreams affright our souls, For conscience is a word that cowards use, 310 Devis'd at first to keep the strong in awe ; Our strong arms be our conscience, swords our law. March on, join bravely, let us to 't pell-mell j If not to heaven, then hand in hand to hell. — What shall I say more than I have inferr'd ? Remember whom you are to cope withal, — A sort of vagabonds, rascals, and runaways, A scum of Bretons, and base lackey peasants, Whom their o'er-cloyed country vomits forth To desperate ventures and assur'd destruction. 320 You sleeping safe, they bring you to unrest ; You having lands and bless'd with beauteous wives, They would restrain the one, distain the other. And who doth lead them but a paltry fellow Long kept in Bretagne at our mother's cost, A milk-sop, one that never in his life Felt so much cold as over shoes in snow? Let 's whip these stragglers o'er the seas again, Lash hence these overweening rags of France, These famish'd beggars, weary of their lives, 330 Who, but for dreaming on this fond exploit. For want of means, poor rats, had hang'd themselves. If we be conquer'd, let men conquer us, RICHARD HI. — 13 194 Ki"g Richard the Third [Actv And not these bastard Bretons, whom our fathers Have in their own land beaten, bobb'd, and thump'd, And on record left them the heirs of shame. — Hark ! I hear their drum. \_Drmn afar off. Fight, gentlemen of England ! fight, bold yeomen ! ■ Draw, archers, draw your arrows to the head ! Spur your proud horses hard and ride in blood ! 340 Amaze the welkin with your broken staves ! — Enter a Messenger What says Lord Stanley? will he bring his power? Messenger. My lord, he doth deny to come. King Richard. Off with his son George's head ! Norfolk. My lord, the enemy is pass'd the marsh ; After the battle let George Stanley die. King Richard. A thousand hearts are great within my bosom. Advance our standards ! set upon our foes ! Our ancient word of courage, fair Saint George, Inspire us with the spleen of fiery dragons ! 350 Upon them ! Victory sits on our helms. \_Exeuni. Scene IV. Another Part of the Field Alaru7n ; Excursions. Enter Norfolk and Forces ; to hitn Catesby Catesby. Rescue, my Lord of Norfolk ! rescue, rescue ! The king enacts more wonders than a man. Scene IVJ King Richard the Third 195 Daring an opposite to every danger. His horse is slain, and all on foot he fights, Seeking for Richmond in the throat of death. Rescue, fair lord, or else the day is lost ! Alarum. Enter King Richard King Richard. A horse ! a horse ! my kingdom for a horse ! Catesby. Withdraw, my lord ; I '11 help you to a horse. King Richard. Slave ! I have set ray life upon a cast. And I will stand the hazard of the die. 10 I think there be six Richmonds in the field j Five have I slain to-day instead of him. — A horse ! a horse ! my kingdom for a horse ! \_Exeunt. Alarums. Enter Richard and Richmond, fighting ; and exeunt J fighting. Retreat a?id fiourish. The?i enter Richmond, Stanley bearing the crown, with divers other Lords and Forces . Richmond. God and your arms be prais'd, victorious friends. The day is ours, the bloody dog is dead. Stanley. Courageous Richmond, well hast thou acquit thee. Lo, here, this long- usurped royalty From the dead temples of this bloody wretch Have I pluck'd off to grace thy brows withal ; Wear it, enjoy it, and make much of it. 20 196 King Richard the Third [Actv Richmond. Great God of heaven, say amen to all ! — But, tell me, is young George Stanley living? Stanley. He is, my lord, and safe in Leicester town, Whither, if it please you, we may withdraw us. Richmond. What men of name are slain on either side ? Stanley. John Duke of Norfolk, Walter Lord Ferrers, Sir Robert Brakenbury, and Sir William Brandon. Richmond. Inter their bodies as becomes their births. Proclaim a pardon to the soldiers fled That in submission will return to us ; 30 And then, as we have ta'en the sacrament. We will unite the white rose and the red. — Smile heaven upon this fair conjunction. That long hath frown'd upon their enmity ! — What traitor hears me and says not amen ? England hath long been mad and scarr'd herself; The brother blindly shed the brother's blood, The father rashly slaughter'd his own son. The son, compell'd, been butcher to the sire. All this divided York and Lancaster, 40 Divided in their dire division, O, now let Richmond and Elizabeth, The true succeeders of each royal house. By God's fair ordinance conjoin together ! — And let their heirs, God, if thy will be so, Enrich the time to come with smooth-fac'd peace, With smiling plenty, and fair prosperous days ! Abate the edge of traitors, gracious Lord, That would reduce these bloody days again. Scene IV] King Richard the Third 197 And make poor England weep in streams of blood ! 50 Let them not live to taste this land's increase That would with treason wound this fair land's peace ! Now civil wounds are stopp'd, Peace lives again ; That she may long live here, God say amen ! \Exeunt. NOTES Ludlow Castle NOTES Introduction The Metre of the Play. — It should be understood at the outset that metre, or the mechanism of verse, is something alto- gether distinct from the music of verse. The one is matter of rule, the other of taste and feeling. Music is not an absolute necessity of verse ; the metrical form is a necessity, being that which consti- tutes the verse. The plays of Shakespeare (with the exception of rhymed pas- sages, and of occasional songs and interludes) are all in unrhymed or blank verse ; and the normal form of this blank verse is illus- trated by the third line of the present play : " And all the clouds that lower'd upon our house." This line, it will be seen, consists of ten syllables, with the even syllables (2d, 4th, 6th, 8th, and loth) accented, the odd syllables 30l 202 Notes (ist, 3d, etc.) being unaccented. Theoretically, it is made up of five feet of two syllables each, with the accent on the second sylla- ble. Such a foot is called an iambus (plural, iambuses, or the Latin iambi'), and the form of verse is called iambic. This fundamental law of Shakespeare's verse is subject to certain modifications, the most important of which are as follows : — 1. After the tenth syllable an unaccented syllable (or even two such syllables) may be added, forming what is sometimes called a female line ; as in the seventh line of the first scene : " Our stern alarums chang'd to merry meetings." The rhythm is complete with the first syllable of 7?ieetings, the second being an extra eleventh syllable. The next line is another example, and 12, 18, and 19 are others. In line 16 we have two extra syllables, the rhythm being complete with the first syllable of majesty. 2. The accent in any part of the verse may be shifted from an even to an odd syllable ; as in lines 19, 21 : — " Cheated of feature by dissembling nature, Into this breathing world, scarce half made up." In both lines the accent is shifted from the second to the first syllable. This change occurs very rarely in the tenth syllable, and seldom in the fourth ; and it is not allowable in two successive accented syllables. 3. An extra unaccented syllable may occur in any part of the line ; as in lines 2, 5, and 13. In 2 the second syllable of glorious is superfluous ; in 5 the third syllable of victorious ; and in 13 the third syllable of lascivious. 4. Any unaccented syllable, occurring in an even place immedi- ately before or after an even syllable which is properly accented, is reckoned as accented for the purposes of the verse ; as, for instance, in lines i and 6. In i the first syllable of discontent, and in 6 the last of 7nonuments are metrically equivalent to accented syllables ; Notes 203 and so with the last syllable of deformity in 27. Other examples are the first syllable of entertain in 29, the last of dangerous in 32, and the first and last syllables oi disinherited \n 57. 5. In many instances in Shakespeare words must be lengthened in order to fill out the rhythm : — (a) In a large class of words in which e or i is followed by another vowel, the e or i is made a separate syllable; as ocean, opinion, soldier, patience (see on i, 3. 248, iv. I. i^, on patient, i. 3. 157, and on ijnpatience, ii. 2. t,^), partial, marriage. Christian (see on iii. 5. 25), etc. For instance, the line, "Held in contempt; while great promotions " (i. 3. 80) appears to have only nine sylla- bles, but promotions is a quadrisyllable ; and many similar instances are mentioned in the Notes. This lengthening occurs most fre- quently at the end of the line. (J)) Many monosyllables ending in r, re, rs, res, preceded by a long vowel or diphthong, are often made dissyllables ; zs fare, fear, dear, fire, hair, hour, your, etc. In iv. i. 82 : " For never yet one hour in his bed," hour is a dissyllable ; as again in v. 3. 31 : "And by the second hour in the morning." In 3 Hen. VI. hour (or hours') is dissyllabic seven times in a single speech (ii. 5. 26, 27, 31, 32, 33, 34, 38). If the word is repeated in a verse, it is often both monosyllable and dissyllable; as in M. of V. iii. 2. 20: "And so, though yours, not yours. Prove it so," where either yours (preferably the first) is a dissyllable, the other being a monosyllable. In /. C. iii. I. 172: "As fire drives out fire, so pity, pity," the first fire is a dissyllable. {c) Words containing / or r, preceded by another consonant, are often pronounced as if a vowel came between the consonants ; as in T. of S. ii. i. 158: "While she did call me rascal fiddler" [fidd(e)ler]; AlVs Well, iii. 5. 43: "If you will tarry, holy pil- grim" [pilg(e)rim]; C. of E. v. I. 360: "These are the parents of these children " (childeren, the original form of the word) ; W. T. iv. 4. 76: "Grace and remembrance [rememb(e) ranee] be to you both ! " etc. In iv. 4. 426 of the present play : " I go. — Write 204 Notes to me very shortly," it is probable that shortly is a trisyllable [short (e)ly], as Malone and Abbott make it. (?)<)'), "Shakespeare adopted verse as the general tenor of his language, and therefore expressed much in verse that is within the capabilities of prose ; in other words, his verse constantly encroaches upon the domain of prose, but his prose can never be said to encroach upon the domain of verse." If in rare instances we think we find exceptions to this latter statement, and prose actually seems to usurp the place of verse, I believe that careful study of the passage will prove the supposed exception to be appar- ent rather than real. Some Books for Teachers and Students. — A few out of the many books that might be commended to the teacher and the critical student are the following: Halliwell-Philhpps's Outlines of the Life of Shakespeare (7th ed. 1887);. Sidney Lee's Life of Shakespeare (1898 ; for ordinary students, the abridged ed. of 1899 is preferable) ; Schmidt's Shakespeare Lexicon (3d ed. 1902) ; Littledale's ed. of Dyce's Glossary (1902); Bartlett's Concordance to Shakespeare (1895); Abbott's Shakespearian Gramviar (1873) ; Furness's "New Variorum" ed. of Shakespeare (1870 fol.; ency- clopaedic and exhaustive) ; Dowden's Shakspere : His Mind and Art (American ed. 1881); Hudson's Life, Art, and Characters of Shakespeare (revised ed. 1 882) ; Mrs. Jameson's Characteristics of Women (several eds. ; some with the title, Shakespeare Heroines^ ; Ten Brink's Five Lectures on Shakespeare (1895); Boas's Shake- speare and LLis Predecessors (1895); Dyer's Folk-lore of Shake- speare (American ed. 1884); Q&ry'vswx'sS Shakespeare Commentaries (Bunnett's translation, 1875); Wordsworth's Shakespeare'' s Knowl- edge of the Bible (3d ed. 1880); Elson's Shakespeare in Music (1901). Some of the above books will be useful to all readers who are interested in special subjects or in general criticism of Shakespeare. Among those which are better suited to the needs of ordinary io8 Notes readers and students, the following may be mentioned : Mabie's Willia?n Shakespeare : Poet, Dramatist, and Man (1900); Dow- den's Shakspere Primer (1877; small but invaluable); Rolfe's Shakespeare the Boy (1896 ; treating of the home and school life, the games and sports, the manners, customs, and folk-lore of the poet's time) ; Guerber's Myths of Greece and Ro77ie (for young students who may need information on mythological allusions not explained in the notes). Black's Judith Shakespeare ( 1 884 ; a novel, but a careful study of the scene and the time) is a book that I always commend to young people, and their elders will also enjoy it. The Lambs' Tales from Shakespeare is a classic for beginners in the study of the dramatist ; and in Rolfe's ed. the plan of the authors is carried out in the Notes by copious illustrative quotations from the plays. Mrs. Cowden-Clarke's Girlhood of Shakespeare' s Heroines (several eds.) will particularly interest girls ; and both girls and boys will find Bennett's Master Skylark (1897) ^^^^ Imogen Clark's Will Shakespeare'' s Little Lad (^i2>()']) equally entertaining and instructive. H. Snowden Ward's Shakespeare's Toivn and Tifnes (1896) and John Leyland's Shakespeare Country (1900) are copiously illus- trated books (yet inexpensive) which may be particularly com- mended for school libraries. For the English historical plays, B. E. Warner's English History in Shakespeare^ s Plays (1894) will be good collateral reading, par- ticularly in secondary schools. Abbreviations in the Notes. — The abbreviations of the names of Shakespeare's plays will be readily understood ; as T. N. for Twelfth Night, Cor. for Coriolanus, 3 Hejt. VL. for The Third Part of King Henry the Sixth, etc. P. P. refers to The Passionate Pilgrim ; V. and A. to Venus and Adonis ; L. C. to Lover's Complaijtt ; and Sonn. to the Sonnets. Other abbreviations that hardly need explanation are Cf (confer, compare), Fol. (following). Id. {idem, the same), and Prol. (pro- logue). The numbers of the lines in the references (except for the Notes 209 present play) are those of the " Globe " edition (the cheapest and best edition of Shakespeare in one compact volume), which is now generally accepted as the standard for line-numbers in works of ref- erence (Schmidt's Lexicon, Abbott's Grammar, Dowden's Primer, the publications of the New Shakspere Society, etc.). The Historical Sources of the Play. — The following ex- tracts from More, Hall, and Holinshed (the spelling being modern- ized) comprise all passages of importance illustrating the play : — Richard, the third son, of whom we now entreat, was in wit and courage equal with either of them, in body and prowess far under them, both, little of stature, ill-featured of limbs, crooked-backed, his left shoulder much higher than his right, hard favoured of visage, and such as is in states called warlike,^ in other men otherwise. He was malicious, wrathful, envious ; and from before his birth ever froward. It is for truth reported that the Duchess, his mother, had so much ado in her travail that she could, not be delivered of him uncut ; and that he came into the world with the feet forward as men be borne outward, and (as the fame runneth) also not un- toothed : whether men of hatred report above the truth, or else that nature changed her course in his beginnings which in the course of his life many things unnaturally committed. So that the full confluence of these qualities, with the defects of favour and amiable proportion, gave proof to this rule of physiognomy — " Distortum vultum sequitur distortio morum." None evil captain was he in the war, as to which his disposition was more meetly than for peace. Sundry victories had he, and some- time overthrows, but never on default, as for his own person, either of hardiness or politic order. Free was he called of dispense, and somewhat above his power liberal ; with large gifts he got him un- 1 The word in More is " warlye ; " but Hall gives the passage thus : " Such as in estates is called a warlyke visage, and emong common persons a crabbed face." RICHARD HI. — 14 2IO Notes steadfast friendship, for which he was fain to pilH and spoil in other places, and got him steadfast hatred. He was close and secret, a deep dissimuler, lowly of countenance, arrogant of heart, outwardly companiable where he inwardly hated, not letting^ to kiss whom he thought to kill, dispitious and cruel, not for evil will alvvay, but ofter for ambition, and either for the surety or increase of his estate. Friend and foe was much-what ^ indifferent where his advantage grew; he spared no man's death whose life with- stood his purpose. He slew with his own hands King Henry VI., being prisoner in the Tower as men constantly said, and that with- out commandment or knowledge of the king, which would un- doubtedly, if he had intended that thing, have appointed that butcherly office to some other than his own born brother. Some wise men also ween that his drift, covertly conveyed, lacked not in helping forth his brother of Clarence to his death, which he resisted openly, howbeit somewhat (as men deemed) more faintly than he that were heartily minded to his wealth.* And they that thus deem, think that he long time in King Edward's life forethought to be king, in case that the king his brother (whose life he looked that evil diet should shorten) should happen to decease (as indeed he did) while his children were young. And they deem that for this intent he was glad of his brother's death, the Duke of Clarence, whose life must needs have hindered him so intending, whether the same Duke of Clarence had kept him true to his nephew the young king, or enterprised to be king himself. But of all this point is there no certainty ; and whoso divineth upon conjectures, may as well shoot too far as too short. — More. 1 Rob ; as in i. 3. 159 below. 2 Forbearing, hesitating. Cf. R. of L. 10 : — " When Collatine- unwisely did not let To praise the clear unmatched red and white," etc. 3 Very much ; a compound like somewhat. Most-what is another obsolete one. 4 Weal, welfare. Cf. commonwealth = the common weal, etc. Notes 211 Where a man [quoth the Duke of Buckingham] is by lawful means in peril, there needeth he the tuition of some special privi- lege, which is the only ground and cause of all sanctuaries ; from which necessity this noble prince is far, whose love to his king, nature, and kindred proveth ; whose innocency to all the world his tender youth proveth ; and so sanctuary as for him not necessary, nor none he can have. Men come not to sanctuary as they come to baptism, to require it by his godfathers ; he must ask it himself that must have it, and reason, sithe no man hath cause to have it but whose conscience of his own fault maketh him have need to require it. What will then hath yonder babe, which if he had dis- cretion to require it, if need were, I daresay would now be right angry with them that keep him there. . . . And if nobody may be taken out of sanctuary because he sayeth he will abide there, then if a child will take sanctuary because he feareth to go to school, his master must let him alone. And as simple as that example is, yet is there less reason in our case than in it, for there, though it be a childish fear, yet is there at the least some fear, and herein is no fear at all. And verily, I have heard of sanctuary men, but I never heard before of sanctuary children ; and, therefore, as for the con- clusion of my mind, whoso may deserve to have need it, if they think it for their surety, let them keep it. But he can be no sanc- tuary man that neither hath wisdom to desire it, nor malice to de- serve it. And he that taketh one out of sanctuary, to do him good, I say plainly that he breaketh no sanctuary. — Hall. The protector and the duke after that they had sent the lord cardinal, the Archbishop of York then Lord Chancellor, the Bishop of Ely, the Lord Stanley, and the Lord Hastings, then Lord Cham- berlain, with many other noblemen, to common i and devise about the coronation in one place, as fast were they in another place contriving the contrary, and to make the protector king. To which council albeit there were adhibited very few, and they 1 Commune, confer. 212 Notes were secret, yet began there here and thereabouts some manner of muttering among the people, as though all should not long be well, though they neither wist what they feared nor wherefore ; were it that before such great things men's hearts of a secret instinct of nature misgive them, as the sea without wind swelleth of himself sometime before a tempest ; or were it, that some one man, happily somewhat perceiving, filled many men with suspicion, though he showed few men what he knew. Howbeit, somewhat the dealing itself made men to muse on the matter, though the council were close. For by little and little all folk withdrew from the Tower and drew unto Crosbie's and Bishop's Gates Street, where the pro- tector kept his household. The protector had the resort, the king in manner desolate. While some for their business made suit to them that had the doing, some were by their friends secretly warned that it might happily turn them to no good, to be too much attendant about the king without the protector's appointment, which removed also divers of the prince's old servants from him, and set new about him. Thus many things coming together, partly by chance, partly of purpose, caused at length not common people only that wound with the wind, but wise men also, and some lords eke, to mark the mat- ter and muse thereon; so far forth that the Lord Stanley, that was after Earl of Derby, wisely mistrusted it, and said unto the Lord Hastings that he much misliked these two several councils. " For while we " (quoth he) " talk of one matter in the one place, little wot we whereof they talk in the other place." — Holinshed. Many lords assembled in the Tower, and there sat in council, devising the honourable solemnity of the king's coronation, of which the time appointed then so near approached, that the pag- eants and subtleties were in making day and night at Westmin- ster, and much victuals killed therefore, that afterward was cast away. These lords so sitting together, commoning of this matter, the protector came in among them, first about nine of the clock, saluting them courteously, and excusing himself that he had been Notes 213 so long, saying merely that he had been asleep that day. After a little talking with them, he said, unto the Bishop of Ely: My lord, you have very good strawberries at your garden in Holberne; I require you let us have a mess of them. Gladly, my lord, quoth he, would God I had some better thing as ready to your pleas- ure as that. And therewithal, in all the haste he sent his ser- vant for a mess of strawberries. The protector set the lords fast in commoning, and thereupon praying them to spare him for a little while, departed thence. And soon after one hour, between ten and eleven, he returned into the chamber among them, all changed, with a wonderful sour angry countenance, knitting the brows, frowning, and fretting, and gnawing on his lips, and so sat him down in his place ; all the lords much dismayed, and sore marvelling of this manner of sudden change, and what thing should him ail. Then when he had sitten still awhile, thus he began : What were they worthy to have, that compass and imagine the destruction of me, being so near of blood unto the king, and pro- tector of his royal person and his realm. At this question, all the lords sat sore astonied, musing much by whom this question should be meant, of which every man wist himself clear. Then the Lord Chamberlain, as he that for the love between them thought he might be boldest with him, answered and said, That they were worthy to be punished as heinous traitors, whatsoever they were. And all the other affirmed the same. That is (quoth he) yonder sorceress my brother's wife, and other with her (meaning the queen). At these words many of the other lords were greatly abashed that favoured her. But the Lord Hastings was in his mind better content that it was moved by her, than by any other whom he loved better. Albeit his heart somewhat grudged that he was not afore made of council in this matter as he was of the taking of her kindred and of their putting to death, which were by his assent before devised to be beheaded at Pontefract this selfsame day ; in w-hich he was not ware that it was by other devised that he himself should the same day be beheaded at London. Then said the pro- 214 Notes tector : Ye shall all see in what wise that sorceress, and that other witch of her council, Shore's wife, with their affinity, have by their sorcery and witchcraft wasted my body. And therewith he plucked up his doublet sleeve to his elbow upon his left arm, where he showed a werish withered arm, and small, as it was never other. Hereupon every man's mind sore misgave them, well perceiving that this matter was but a quarrel. For they well wist that the queen was too wise to go about any such folly. And also if she would, yet would she, of all folk, least make Shore's wife of her council, whom of all women she most hated, as that concubine whom the king her husband had most loved. And also no man was there present but well knew that his arm was ever such since his birth. Natheless the Lord Chamberlain (which from the death of King Edward kept Shore's wife, on whom he somewhat doted in the king's life, saving as it is said he that while forbare her of reverence toward his king, or else of a certain kind of fidelity to his friend) answered and said : Certainly, my lord, if they have so heinously done, they be worthy of heinous punishment. What, quoth the protector, thou servest me I ween with ifs and with ands ; I tell thee they have so done, and that I will make good on thy body, traitor. And therewith, as in a great anger, he clapped his fist upon the board a great rap. At which token one cried treason without the chamber. Therewith a door clapped, and in come there rushing men in harness as many as the chamber might hold. And anon the protector said to the Lord Hastings, I arrest thee, traitor. What, me, my lord, quoth he. Yea, thee, traitor, quoth the protector. And another let fly at the Lord Stanley, which shrunk at the stroke, and fell under the table, or else his head had been cleft to the teeth ; for as shortly as he shrank, yet ran the blood about his ears. Then were they all quickly bestowed in divers chambers, except the Lord Chamberlain, whom the protector bade speed and shrive him a pace, for by Saint Paul (quoth he) I will not to dinner till I see thy head off. It booted him not to ask why, but heavily he took a priest at adven- ture, and made a short shrift, for a longer would not be suffered, the Notes 215 protector made so much haste to dinner, which he might not go to until this were done, for saving of his oath. So he was brought forth into the green beside the chapel within the Tower, and his head laid down upon a long log of timber, and there stricken off, and afterward his body with his head interred at Windsor beside the body of King Edward, whose both souls our Lord pardon. — More. A marvellous case it is to hear either the warnings that he should have voided, or the tokens of that he could not void. For the next night before his death, the Lord Stanley sent to him a trusty messenger at midnight, in all the baste, requiring him to rise and ride away with him for he was disposed utterly no longer for to abide, for he had a fearful dream, in the which he thought that a boar with his tusks so rased ^ them both by the heads that the blood ran about both their shoulders ; and for as much as the pro- tector gave the boar for his cognisance, he imagined that it should be he. This dream made such a fearful impression in his heart that he was thoroughly determined no longer to tarry, but had his horse ready, if the Lord Hastings would go with him, so that they would ride so far that night, that they should be out of danger by the next day. Ah ! good lord (quoth the Lord Hastings to the messenger), leaneth my lord thy master so much to such trifles, and hath such faith in dreams, which either his own fear phantasieth, or do rise in the night's rest by reason of the day's thought ? Tell him it is plain witchcraft to believe in such dreams, which if they were tokens of things to come, why thinketh he not that we might as likely make them true by our going, if we were caught and brought back (as friends fail fliers) ; for then had the boar a cause likely to rase us with his tusks, as folks that fled for some false- hood; wherefore, either is there peril nor none there is indeed, or if any be, it is rather in going than abiding. And if we should needs fall in peril one way or other, yet had I liefer that men should say it were by other men's falsehood, than think it were 1 See on iii. 2. 11 below. 21 6 Notes either our own fault or faint feeble heart; and therefore go to thy master, and commend me to him, and say that I pray him to be merry and have no fear, for I assure him I am assured of the man he wotteth of, as I am sure of mine own hand. God send grace (quoth the messenger), and so departed. Certain it is alsip that in riding toward the Tower, the same morning in which he was beheaded, his horse that he was accustomed to ride on, stumbled with him twice or thrice almost to the falling : which thing although it happeth to them daily to whom no mischance is toward, yet hath it been, as an old evil token, observed as a going toward mischief. Now this that followeth was no warning but an envious scorn. The same morning, ere he were up from his bed, there came to him Sir Thomas Haward son to the Lord Haward (which lord was one of the priviest of the lord protector's council and doing), as it were of courtesy to accompany him to the council, but of truth sent by the lord protector to haste him hitherward. This Sir Thomas, while the Lord Hastings staid a while commun- ing with a priest whom he met in the Tower Street, brake the lord's tale, saying to him merely, What, my lord ! I pray you come on ; wherefore talk you so long with that priest? you have no nfeed of a priest yet : and laughed upon him, as though he would say, You shall have need of one soon. But little wist the other what he meant (but or ^ night these words were well remembered by them that heard them) ; so the true Lord Hastings little mistrusted, and was never merrier, nor thought his life in more surety in all his days, which thing is often a sign of change : but I shall rather let any thing pass me than the vain surety of man's mind so near his death; for upon the very Tower wharf, so near the place where his head was off so soon after as a man might well cast a ball, a pur- suivant of his own, called Hastings, met with him, and of their meeting in that place he was put in remembrance of another time in which it happened them to meet before together in the place, at I Or = before ; as in Temp. i. 2. 11, v. i. 103, etc. Notes 217 which time the Lord Hastings had been accused to King Edward by the Lord Rivers, the queen's brother, insomuch that he was for a while, which lasted not long, highly in the king's indignation. As he now met the same pursuivant in the same place, the jeopardy so well passed, it gave him great pleasure to talk with him thereof, with whom he had talked in the same place of that matter, and therefore he said. Ah, Hastings, art thou remembered when I met thee here once with an heavy heart? Yea, my lord (quoth he), that I remember well, and thanked be to God they gat no good nor you no harm thereby. Thou wouldst say so (quoth he) if thou knewest so much as I do, which few know yet, and more shall shortly. That meant he, that the Earl Rivers and the Lord Rich- ard and Sir Thomas Vaughan should that day be beheaded at Pom- fret, as they were indeed; which act he wist well should be done, but nothing ware that the axe hung so near his own head. In faith, man (quoth he), I was never so sorry, nor never stood in so great danger of my life, as I did when thou and I met here ; and lo ! the world is turned now; now stand mine enemies in the dan- ger, as thou mayest hap to hear more hereafter, and I never in my life merrier, nor never in so great surety. . . . Now flew the fame of this lord's death through the city and farther about, like a wind in every man's ear ; but the protector immediately after dinner, intending to set some colour upon the matter, sent in all the haste for many substantial men out of the city into the Tower, and at their coming himself with the Duke of Buck- ingham stood harnessed in old evil-favoured briganders,^ such as no man would ween that they would have vouchsafed to have put on their backs, except some sudden necessity had constrained them. Then the lord protector showed them that the Lord Hastings and other of his conspiracy had contrived to have suddenly destroyed him and the Duke of Buckingham there the same day in counsel, 1 Brigandines ; a kind of coat of mail. Cf. Milton, S. A. 1120 : " And brigandine of brass," etc. 2 1 8 Notes and what they intended farther was yet not well known ; of which their treason, he had never knowledge before ten of the clock the same forenoon, which sudden fear drave them to put on such har- ness as came next to their hands for their defence, and so God help them ! that the mischief turned upon them that would have done it; and thus he required them to report. Every man answered fair, as though no man mistrusted the matter, which of truth no man believed. . . . When the Duke [of Buckingham] had said, and looked that the people, whom he hoped that the mayor had framed before, should, after this flattering proposition made, have cried King Richard ! King Richard ! all was still and mute, and not one word answered to; wherewith the duke was marvellously abashed, and taking the mayor near to him, with other that were about him privy to the matter, said unto them softly, What meaneth this that the people be so still? Sir, quoth the mayor, percase ^ they perceive you not well. That shall we amend, quoth he, if be that will help ; and therewith somewhat louder rehearsed the same matter again, in other order and other words, so well and ornately, and nevertheless so evidently and plain, with voice, gesture, and countenance so comely and so convenient, that every man much marvelled that heard him, and thought that they never heard in their lives so evil a tale so well told. But were it for wonder, or fear, or that each looked that other should speak first, not one word was there an- swered of all the people that stood before ; but all were as still as the midnight, not so much rounding ^ among them, by which they might seem once to commune what was best to do. When the mayor saw this, he, with other partners of the counsel, drew about the duke, and said that the people had not been accustomed there to be spoken to but by the recorder, which is the mouth of the city, 1 Perchance. Ci.'QACon, Colours of Good and Evil : " though percase it will be more strong by glory and fame," etc. 2 Whispering. Cf. K. John, ii. i. 566 : " rounded in the ear," etc. Notes 219 and haply to him they will answer. With that the recorder, called Thomas Fitz William, a sad man and an honest, which was but newly come to the ofiEice, and never had spoken to the people be- fore, and loth was with that matter to begin, notwithstanding, there- unto commanded by the mayor, made rehearsal to the commons of that which the duke had twice purposed himself ; but the recorder so tempered his tale that he showed every thing as the duke his words were, and no part of his own : but all this no change made in the people, which alway after one stood as they had been amazed. Whereupon the duke rounded with the mayor, and said, This is a marvellous obstinate silence; and therewith turned to the people again, with these words : Dear friends, we come to move you to that thing which peradventure we so greatly needed not, but that the lords of this realm and commons of other parts might have sufficed, saying such love we bear you, and so much set by you, that we would not gladly do without you that thing in which to be partners is your weal and honour, which as to us seemeth you see not or weigh not ; wherefore we require you to give us an answer, one or other, whether ye be minded, as all the nobles of the realm be, to have this noble prince, now protector, to be your king ? And at these words the people began to whisper among themselves secretly, that the voice was neither loud nor base, but like a swarm of bees, till at the last, at the nether end of the hall, a bushment ^ of the duke's servants, and one Nashfield, and other belonging to the protector, with some prentices and lads that thrusted into the hall amongst the press, began suddenly at men's backs to cry out as loud as they could. King Richard ! King Richard ! and then threw up their caps in token of joy, and they that stood before cast back their heads marvelling thereat, but nothing they said. And when the duke and the mayor saw this manner, they wisely turned it to their purpose, and said it was a goodly cry and a joyful to hear every man with one voice, and no man saying nay. Wherefore friends 1 A concealed body of men. Cf. ajnbusk. 220 Notes (quoth the duke), sith we perceive that it is all your whole minds to have this noble man for your king, whereof we shall make his grace so effectual report that we doubt not but that it shall redound to your great wealth and commodity : we therefore require you that to-morrow ye go with us, and we with you, to his noble grace, to make our humble petition and request to him in manner before remembered. Then on the morrow the mayor and aldermen and chief com- moners of the city, in their best manner apparelled, assembling them together at Paul's, resorted to Baynard's castle, where the protector lay, to which place also, according to the appointment, repaired the Duke of Buckingham, and divers nobles with him, besides many knights and gentlemen. And thereupon the duke sent word to the lord protector of the being there of a great hon- ourable company to move a great matter to his grace. Whereupon the protector made great difficulty to come down to them, except he knew some part of" their errand, as though he doubted, and partly mistrusted, the coming of such a number to him so suddenly, without any warning or knowledge whether they came for good or harm. Then, when the duke had showed this to the mayor and other, that they might thereby see how little the protector looked for this matter, they sent again by the messenger such loving mes- sage, and therewith so humbly besought him to vouchsafe that they might resort to his presence to purpose their intent, of which they would to none other person any part disclose. At the last he came out of his chamber, and yet not down to them, but in a gallery over them, with a bishop on every hand of him, where they beneath might see him and speak to him, as though he would not yet come near them till he wist what they meant. And thereupon the Duke of Buckingham first made humble petition to him, on the behalf of them all, that his grace would pardon them, and license them to purpose unto his grace the intent of their coming without his dis- pleasure, without which pardon obtained they durst not be so bold to move him of that matter ; in which, albeit they meant as much Notes 221 honour to his grace as wealth to all the realm beside, yet were they not sure how his grace would take it, whom they would in no wise offend. Then the protector, as he was very gentle of himself, and also longed sore apparently to know what they meant, gave him leave to purpose what him liked, verily trusting for the good mind that he bare them all, none of them any thing would intend to him- ward,i wherewith he thought to be grieved. When the duke had this leave and pardon to speak, then waxed he bold to show him their intent and purpose, with all the causes moving them thereto, as ye before have heard ; and finally, to beseech his grace that it would like him, of his accustomed goodness and zeal unto the realm, now with his eye of pity to behold the long continued dis- tress and decay of the same, and to set his gracious hand to the redress and amendment thereof, by taking upon him the crown and governance of the realm according to his right and title law- fully descended unto him, and to the laud of God, profit and surety of the land, and unto his grace so much the more honour and less pain, in that never prince reigned upon any people that were so glad to live under his obeisance as the people of this realm under his. When the protector had heard the proposition, he looked very strangely thereat, and made answer, that albeit he knew partly the things by them alleged to be true, yet such entire love he bare to King Edward and his children, and so much more regarded his honour in other realms about than the crown of any one, of which he was never desirous, so that he could not find in his heart in this point to induce to their desire, for in all other nations where the truth were not well known it should peradventure be thought that it were his own ambitious mind and device to depose the prince and to take himself the crown, with which infamy he would in no wise have his honour stained for any crown, in which he had ever 1 Cf. " to usward " {Psalms, xl. 5, Ephesians, i. 19) , " to theewaid " (i Samuel, xix. 4), "to youward " {Ephesians, iii. 2), etc. 222 Notes perchance perceived much more labour and pain than pleasure to him that so would use it, as he that would not and were not worthy to have it. Notwithstanding, he not only pardoned them of the motion that they made him, but also thanked them for the love and hearty favour they bare him, praying them for his sake to bear the same to the prince under whom he was and would be content to live, and with his labour and counsel, as far as it should like the king to use it, he would do his uttermost devoir to set the realm in good estate, which was already in the little time of his protectorship (lauded be God!) well begun, in that the malice of such as were before the occasion of the contrary, and of new intended to be, were now, partly by good policy, partly more by God his special providence than man's provision, repressed and put under. Upon this answer given, the Duke of Buckingham, by the protec- tor his license, a little rounded,^ as well with other noble men about him as with the mayor and recorder of London. And after that (upon like pardon desired and obtained) he showed aloud unto the protector, for a final conclusion, that the realm was appointed that King Edward his line should no longer reign upon them, both that they had so far gone that it was now no surety to retreat, as for that they thought it for the weal universal to take that way, although they had not yet begun it. Wherefore, if it would like his grace to take the crown upon him, they would humbly beseech him thereunto, and if he would give them a resolute answer to the contrary (which they would be loth to hear), then must they seek, and should not fail to find some other nobleman that would. These words much moved the protector, which, as every man of small intelligence may wit, would never have inclined thereto ; but when he saw there was none other way but that he must take it, or else he and his both to go from it, he said to the lords and commons, Sith it is we perceive well that all the realm is so set (whereof we be very sorry), that they will not suffer in any wise King Edward 1 Whispered. See p. 218 above. Notes 223 his line to govern them, whom no man earthly can govern against their wills : and we also perceive that no man is there to whom the crown can by so just title appertain as to ourself, as very right heir lawfully begotten of the body of our most dread and dear father Richard late Duke of York, to which title is now joined your elec- tion, the nobles and commons of the realm, which we of all titles possible take for most effectual, we be content and agree favourably to incline to your petition and request, and according to the same here we take upon us the royal estate of pre-eminence and kingdom of the two noble realms, England and France; the one, from this day forward by us and our heirs to rule, govern, and defend ; the other, by God his grace and your good help, to get again, subdue, and establish for ever in due obedience unto this realm of England, the advancement whereof we never ask of God longer to live than we intend to procure and set forth. With this there was a great cry and shout, crying King Richard ! and so the lords went up to the king, and so he was after that day called. And forasmuch as his mind gave him that, his nephews living, men would not reckon that he could have right to the realm, he thought therefore without delay to rid them, as though the killing of his kinsmen might end his cause and make him kindly king. Whereupon he sent John Green, whom he specially trusted, unto Sir Robert Brakenbury, constable of the Tower, with a letter and credence also, that the same Sir Robert in any wise should put the two children to death. This John Green did his errand to Braken- bury, kneeling before Our Lady in the Tower ; who plainly answered that he would never put them to death to die therefore. With the which answer Green returned, recounting the same to King Richard at Warwick, yet on his journey ; wherewith he took such displeas- ure and thought, that the same night he said to a secret page of his, Ah, whom shall a man trust? they that I have brought up myself, they that I weened would have most surely served me, even those fail me, and at my commandment will do nothing for me. Sir, quoth the page, there lieth one in the pallet chamber without, that 224 Notes I dare well say, to do your grace pleasure, the thing were right hard that he would refuse : meaning by this James Tyrrel. . . . James Tyrrel devised that they should be murthered in their beds, and no blood shed; to the execution whereof he appointed Miles Forest, one of the four that before kept them, a fellow flesh bred in murther beforetime ; and to him he joined one John Dighton, his own horse-keeper, a big, broad, square, and strong knave. Then all the other being removed from them, this Miles Forest and John Dighton about midnight, the sely ^ children lying in their beds, came into the chamber, and suddenly lapped them up amongst the clothes, and so bewrapped them and entangled them, keeping down by force the feather-bed and pillows hard unto their mouths, that within a while they smothered and stifled them ; and their breaths failing, they gave up to God their innocent souls into the joys of heaven, leaving to the tormentors their bodies dead in the bed ; which after the wretches perceived, first by the struggling with the pangs of death, and after long lying still, to be thoroughly dead, they laid the bodies out upon the bed, and fetched James Tyrrel to see them ; which, when he saw them perfectly dead, he caused the murtherers to bury them at the stair foot, meetly deep in the ground, under a great heap of stones. Then rode James Tyrrel in great haste to King Richard, and showed him all the manner of the murther ; who gave him great thanks, and, as men say, there made him knight. — More. There came into his ungracious mind a thing not only detestable to be spoken of in the remembrance of man, but much more cruel and abominable to be put in execution : for when he resolved in his wavering mind how great a fountain of mischief toward him should spring if the Earl of Richmond should be advanced to the marriage of his niece (which thing he heard say by the rumour of the people that no small number of wise and witty personages enterprised to 1 Seely, innocent, helpless. In Rich. II. v. 5. 25, the quartos have " seely," the folios " silly." Notes 225 compass and Ijring to conclusion), he clearly determined to recon- cile to his favour his brother's wife. Queen Elizabeth, either by fair words or liberal promises, firmly believing, her favour once obtained, that she would not stick to commit and lovingly credit to him the rule and governance both of her and her daughters ; and so by that means the Earl of Richmond of the affinity of his niece should be utterly defrauded and beguiled. And if no ingenious remedy could be otherwise invented to save the innumerable mischiefs which were even at hand and like to fall, if it should happen Queen Anne his wife to depart out of this present world, then he himself would rather take to wife his cousin and niece the Lady Elizabeth, than for lack of that affinity the whole realm should run to ruin, as who said, that if he once fell from his estate and dignity the ruin of the realm must needs shortly ensue and follow. Wherefore he sent to the queen, being in sanctuary, divers and often messages, which first should excuse and purge him of all things before against her attempted or procured, and after should so largely promise promo- tions innumerable and benefits, not only to her, but also to her son Lord Thomas Marquis Dorset, that they should bring her, if it were possible, into some wan-hope,^ or, as some men say, into a fool's paradise. The messengers, being men both of wit and gravity, so persuaded che queen with great and pregnant reasons, then with fair and large promises, that she began somewhat to relent and to give to them no deaf ear, insomuch that she faithfully promised to submit and yield herself fully and frankly to the king's will and pleasure. . . . Amongst the noblemen whom he most mistrusted these were the principal : Thomas Lord Stanley, Sir William Stanley his brother, Gilbert Taylor, and six hundred other, of whose purposes although King Richard were ignorant, yet he gave neither confidence nor credence to any one of them, and least of all to the Lord Stanley, 1 Here = delusive hope, as the context shows. It is literally wanJ of hope. Cf. the Scotch compounds, wan-grace, wan-luck, wan-thrift, etc. RICHARD III. — 15 226 Notes because he was joined in matrimony with the Lady Margaret, mother to the Earl of Richmond, as afterward apparently ye may perceive. For when the said Lord Stanley would have departed into his country to visit his family, and to recreate and refresh his spirits (as he openly said), but the truth was to the intent to be in a perfect readiness to receive the Earl of Richmond at his first arrival in England, the king in no wise would suffer him to depart before that he had left as an hostage in the court George Stanley, Lord Strange, his first begotten son and heir. . . . In the mean season King Richard (which was appointed now to finish his last labour by the very divine justice and providence of God, which called him to condign punishment for his scelerate ^ merits and mischievous deserts) marched to a place meet for two battles to encounter, by a village called Bosworth, not far from Leicester, and there he pitched his field, refreshed his soldiers, and took his rest. The fame went that he had the same night a dread- ful and a terrible dream ; for it seemed to him, being asleep, that he saw divers images like terrible devils, which pulled and hauled him, not suffering him to take any quiet or rest. The which strange vision not so suddenly strake his heart with a sudden fear, but it stuffed his head and troubled his mind with many dreadful and busy imaginations; for incontinent after, his heart being also damped, he prognosticated before the doubtful chance of the battle to come, not using the alacrity and mirth of mind and of countenance as he was accustomed to do before he came toward the battle. And lest that it might be suspected that he was abashed for fear of his ene- mies, and for that cause looked so piteously, he recited and declared to his familiar friends in the morning his wonderful vision and terrible dream. . . . Between both armies there was a great morass, which the Earl of Richmond left on his right hand, for this intent, that it should 1 Wicked (Latin sceleratus) . Merits = deserts in a bad sense ; as in Lear, iii. 5. 8, v. 3. 44, A. and C. v. 2. 178, etc. I Notes 227 be on that side a defence for his part ; and in so doing he had the sun at his back and in the face of his enemies. When King Rich- ard saw the earl's company was passed the morass, he commanded with all haste to set upon them ; then the trumpets blew and the soldiers shouted, and the king's archers courageously let fly their arrows ; the earl's bowmen stood not still, but paid them home again. The terrible shot once passed, the armies joined and came to hand-strokes, where neither sword nor bill was spared ; at which encounter the Lord Stanley joined with the earl. The Earl of Ox- ford in the mean season, fearing lest while his company was fight- ing they should be compassed and circumvented with the multitude of his enemies, gave commandment in every rank that no man should be so hardy as to go above ten foot from the standard ; which commandment once known, they knit themselves together and ceased a little from fighting. The adversaries, suddenly abashed at the matter, and mistrusting some fraud or deceit, began also to pause, and left striking, and not against the wills of many, which had liefer had the king destroyed than saved, and therefore they fought very faintly or stood still. The Earl of Oxford, bring- ing all his band together on the one part, set on his enemies freshly. Again, the adversaries perceiving that, placed their men slender and thin before, and thick and broad behind, beginning again hardily the battle. While the two forwards thus mortally fought, each intending to vanquish and convince the other, King Richard was admonished by his explorators and espials ^ that the Earl of Richmond, accompanied with a small number of men of arms, was not far off ; and as he approached and marched toward him, he perfectly knew his personage by certain demonstrations and tokens which he had learnt and known of other ; and being inflamed with ire and vexed with outrageous malice, he put his spurs to his horse and rode out of the side of the range of his battle, leaving the 1 Explorators and espials = scouts and spies. For the latter word, of. Ham. ill. i. 32. 228 Notes [Act I avant-gardes fighting, and like a hungry lion ran with spear in rest toward him. The Earl of Richmond perceived well the king furi- ously coming toward him, and, by cause the whole hope of his wealth and purpose was to be determined by battle, he gladly proffered to encounter with him body to body and man to man. King Richard set on so sharply at the first brunt that he overthrew the earl's standard and slew Sir William Brandon, his standard- bearer (which was father to Sir Charles Brandon, by King Henry the Eighth created Duke of Suffolk), and matched hand to hand with Sir John Cheinye, a man of great force and strength, which would have resisted him, and the said John was by him manfully overthrown, and so he making open passage by dint of sword as he went forward, the Earl of Richmond withstood his violence and kept him at the sword's point without advantage longer than his companions other thought or judged ; which, being almost in despair of victory, were suddenly recomforted by Sir William Stan- ley, which came to succours with three thousand tall men, at which very instant King Richard's men were driven back and fled, and he himself, manfully fighting in the middle of his enemies, was slain and brought to his death as he worthily had deserved. Of the nobility were slain John Duke of Norfolk, which was warned by divers to refrain from the field, insomuch that the night before he should set forward toward the king one wrote on his gate : — " Jack of Norfolk, be not too bold, For Dykon thy master is bought and sold." — HALL. ACT I Scene I. — The acts and scenes are marked throughout in the folio, but not in the Quartos. 2. Sun. The quartos have "sonne," and the folio "Son." There may be a play upon the word, and there is certainly an allu- Scene I] Notes 229 sion to the heraldic cognizance of Edward IV., which was a sun, m memory of the three suns that are said to have appeared at the battle of Mortimer's Cross when he defeated the Lancastrians. Steevens quotes Drayton, Polyolbion : — • " And thankful to high heaven, which of his cause had care, Three suns for his device still in his ensign bare." 8. Measures. Dances ; as often. Cf. R. and J. i. 4. 10, i. 5. 52, etc. 9. Grim-visag'd. Cf. grim-looked in M. N. D. v. I. 171, and grini-grhming in V. and A. 933. See also on v. 3. 91 below. 10. Barbed. Caparisoned for war ; used only of horses. Not to be confounded with barb, a Barbary horse. S. uses barbed only here and in Rich. 11. iii. 3. 117. 11. Fearful. Terrible; as in iii. 4. 103 below. Some make it = full of fear; as in iv. 2. 121, iv. 3. 51, iv. 4. 313, v. i. 18, and V. 3. 182. 17. Ambling. For the contemptuous use of the word, cf. I Hen. IV. iii. 2. 60, R. and J. i. 4. 11, and Ham. iii. I. 151. 19. Feature. Beauty, comeliness. Cf. Ham. iii. i. 167, etc. Dissembling = deceitful, treacherous ; carrying out the idea of cheated. Cf. C. of E. iv. 4. 103 : " Dissembling villain, thou art false in both," etc. 22. Lamely and unfashionable. The adverbial ending in lamely does duty for both words. Cf. iii. 4. 48 below : " cheerfully and smooth," etc. 24. Piping. When the pipe is sounding instead of the fife. Cf. Much Ado, iii. 3. 13: "I have known when there was no music with him but the drum and the fife ; and now had he rather hear the tabor and the pipe." 26. See. The folio reading ; the quartos have " spy." This is a fair sample of hundreds of little variations between the two texts. I shall not attempt to note all of them, but shall give enough to 230 Notes [Act I show how trivial they often are and how perplexing it is to choose between them. 27. Descant. Comment. See on iii. 7. 48 below ; and cf. 7?. q/Z. 1134: — » " For burden-wise I'll hum on Tarquin still, While thou on Tereus descant'st better skill." 29. Well-spoken. Cf. i. 3. 348 below. The word is still in use ; but such forms were more common in Elizabethan English. 32. Inductions dangerous. " Preparations for mischief. The induction is preparatory to the action of the play " (Johnson). Cf. iv. 4. 5 below. 33. Libels. The only instance of the word in S. 36. Just. Honest, as good as his word. 38. Mew'd up. Shut up, imprisoned. Cf. 132 and i. 3. 139 below. Mew originally meant to moult, or shed the feathers ; and as a noun, " the place, whether it be abroad or in the house, in which the hawk is put during the time she casts, or doth change her feathers " (R. Holmes's Acadeuiy of Armory^. Milton uses the verb in the magnificent description of Liberty in Of Unlicensed Printing: " Methinks I see her as an eagle mewing her mighty youth, and kindling her undazzled eyes at the full midday beam." The royal stables in London were called mews from the original use of the buildings for keeping the king's falcons ; and the word is now in common use in England for a livery stable. 39. A prophecy, etc. Holinshed says : " Some have reported that the cause of this nobleman's death rose of a foolish prophecie, which was, that after King Edward should raign one whose first letter of his name should be a G ; wherewith the king and the queene were sore troubled, and began to conceive a grievous grudge against this duke, and could not be in quiet until they had brought him to his end." 44. Tendering. Having regard to. Cf. ii. 4. 72 below. Here there is a touch of sarcasm in the word. Scene I] Notes 23 T 45. Conduct. Escort. Qi. R. and /. v. 3. 116: "Come, bitter conduct, come, unsavoury guide," etc. 49. Belike. It is likely, it would seem. Cf. i. 3. 65 below, 54. Hearkens after. Gives heed to. Cf. Mtuh Ado, v. i. 216, etc. 55. The cross-rozv. The alphabet; so called, according to some, from the cross anciently placed before it, to indicate that religion was the chief end of learning ; or, as others say, from a supersti- tious custom of writing the alphabet in the form of a cross, by way of charm (Nares). The original form was Christ-cross-row, which became corrupted into criss-cross-row ZMd contracted into cross-row. Halliwell-Phillipps quotes Babilon, Seconde Weeke of Du Bartas, 1596: — " Who teach us how to read and put into our pawes Some little Chriscrosrow instead of civill lawes." See also Wordsworth, Excursion, book viii. : — " From infant conning of the Christ-cross-row, Or puzzling through a primer, line by line." 58. For. Because ; but connecting more closely than as now used. Cf. Temp. i. 2, 272 : " And for thou wast a spirit too deli- cate ; " and M. for M. ii. i. 28 : — " You may not so extenuate his offence For I have had such faults ; " that is, the fact that I have been guilty is no excuse for him. Here the modern meaning of for would be nonsensical. 60. Toys. "Fancies, freaks of imagination" (Johnson). Cf. Ham. i. 3. 6 : " toys of desperation ; " 0th. iii. 4. 156 : " no jealous toy," etc. 65. That tempers him, etc. The reading of the first quarto. The folio has, "That tempts him to this harsh Extremity." The queen did not tempt the king, who was ruled by her, but tempered or moulded him to her will. Cf. T. G. of V. iii. 2. 64, Hen. V. ii. 2. n8, etc. 67. Woodeville. The word is here a trisyllable. There, as 232 Notes [Act I Clarke remarks, " has the effect of denotement, with a dash of sar- casm superadded." 81. O^ej'worn widorv. A contemptuous reference to the queen (she was a widow when the king married her), herself being Mis- tress Shore. For overworn (= worn out) cf. V. and A. 135, 866, and Sonn. 63. 2. 87. Of what degree soever. Referring to matiy not to conference. 92. Well struck in years. Cf. Genesis, xviii. II, xxiv. I, Luke, i. 7, etc. See also T. of S. ii. I. 362 : " Myself am struck in years." 94. Passing. Exceedingly ; often used adverbially, but only before adjectives and adverbs. 95. Kindred. This is the reading of all the early eds. ; but Marshall's suggestion of "kin" is very plausible. For kiti in this sense, cf. K.John, i. i. 273, Rich. iv. I. 141, etc. 97. Nought. The first quarto and the folio have nought here, but naught in the next two lines. The latter is usually the spelling in the early eds. when the word is = worthless, bad, wicked. 100. Were best. " It were best for him " was the original con- struction ; but the dative came to be considered a nominative. Cf. iv. 4. 339 below. 106. Abjects. Mason remarks : " Gloster forms a substantive from the adjective abject, and uses it to express a lower degree of submission than is implied by the word subject, which otherwise he would naturally have made use of. The queen's abjects means the most servile of her subjects.'''' It is the only instance of the noun in S. Cf. Jonson, Every Man Out of his Humour : "I'll make thee stoop, thou abject." Steevens cites Chapman, Odyssey : "Whither ? rogue! abject." See also Psalms, xxxv. 15. 115. Lie. That is, lie in prison. Cf. i Hen. IV. iv. 3. 96: " There without ransom to lie forfeited." See also 3 Hen. VI. iii. 2. 70, etc. 121. New-deliver\i. S. was fond of compounds with new. Cf. 50 above, and ii. 2. 125 and iv. 4. 10 below. 131. Prevailed on. Prevailed against. Cf. iii. 4. 60 below. Scene II] Notes 233 132. Mew'd. See on 38 above. 137. Fear kim. Fear for him. Ci. Much Ado, m.i.li, M. for M. iv. I. 70, etc. 138. By Saini Paul, The folio has "by S. Tohn," but by Saint Paul elsewhere in the play. The oath is said to have been habit- ual with Richard. 139. An evil diet. "A bad regimen" (Steevens and Schmidt), or bad habits in general. The expression is taken from More (p. 210 above). 152. Bustle. Be busy or active. Cf. v. 3. 290 belovV. 153. Warwick's youngest daughter. Lady Anne, widow of Prince Edward, son of Henry VI. In 3 Hen. VI. iii. 3. 242, War- wick proposes his " eldest daughter " as a wife for Edward, but it was really the younger one that he married. 158. Close. Equivalent to secret, as often. Cf. iv. 2. 35 below. 159. By marrying her. Transposed for emphasis. Scene II. — Anne could not have been present at the funeral of King Henry, for Margaret carried her away with her from the battle of Tewkesbury, and Clarence afterwards kept her in conceal- ment till 1472. The funeral was in May, 147 1. 3. Obsequiously. As befits the obsequies. Cf. obsequious in Ham. i. 2. 92 : " To do obsequious sorrow." 5. Key-cold. Cf. R. of L. 1774: "in key-cold Lucrece' bleeding stream." S. uses it only twice. A key, on account of the coldness of the metal, was employed to stop any slight bleeding. 8. Invocate. Used by S. three times (cf. Sonn. 38. 10 and I Hen. VI. i. i. 52); invoke only twice. 12. Windows. Wounds ; figuratively used as " not the usual and natural passage " (Schmidt). Cf. K. John, i. I. 171 and v. 7. 29. 13. Helpless. Affording no help, unavailing. Cf. C. of E. ii. i. 39: — " So thou, that hast no unkind mate to grieve thee, With urging helpless patience wouldst relieve me." 234 Notes [Act I 14,15. O, cursed, Qic. The folio reading ; the first quarto has — " Curst be the hand that made these fatal holes ! Curst be the heart that had the heart to do it ! " 16. Cursed the brood, etc. This Hne is found only in the folios. 1 7. Hap. Fortune. Cf. i . 3. 84 below. 19. To wolves, to spiders. The folio reading ; the quartos have "to adders, spiders," etc. This has been generally adopted on the ground that wolves are not creeping things ; to which White replies : " If the folio had merely wolves for adders, this reasoning would be good, if not conclusive ; but it has, ' to wolves, to spiders, toads, or any creeping venom'd thing,' etc., where the repetition of the preposition cuts off the connection which would otherwise exist between ' wolves ' and ' creeping venom'd thing,' which refers only to spiders and toads." Let any one read the passage aloud, with the proper pause and change of expression after wolves, and I think he will admit that the folio text is right. 22. Prodigious. Monstrous, portentous ; the only meaning in S. Cf. M. N. D. V. I. 419, K. John, iii. i. 46, R. and J. i. 5. 142, etc. 23. Aspect. The regular accent in S. Cf. 156 below. 25. Unhappiness. " Evilness " (Schmidt) ; " disposition to mis- chief " (Steevens). S. uses the word only here and in Much Ado, ii. I. 361 : "dreamed of unhappiness." 29. Chertsey. A town on the Thames, 19 miles southwest of London. Henry VI. was buried in Chertsey Abbey, according to Grafton, " without priest or clerk, torch or taper, singing or saying ; " but ancient records show expenditures for the funeral, for the hire of barges with rowers on the Thames to convey the body to Chertsey, and for obsequies and masses at the burial there. The abbey build- ings were destroyed more than two hundred years ago, and only a few fragments of the walls now remain. 35. Devoted. Pious, holy. 37. /'// make a corse, etc. Cf. Ham. i. 4. 85 : " I'll make a ghost of him that lets me," Scene II] Notes 235 39. Unmanner^d. Cf. T. of S. iv. I. 169: "You heedless jolt- heads and unmanner'd slaves ! " 42. Spurn upon. Elsewhere (when the verb is intransitive) S. has spurn at, except in K. John, iii. i. 141, where we find spurn against. 49. Curst. Shrewish ; as often. Cf. T. of S.'i. i. 185, i. 2. 70, 128, ii. I. 187, 294, 307, etc. 52. Exclaims. The noun occurs again in iv. 4. 135 below ; also in Rich. II. i. 2. 2 and (singular) T. and C. v. 3. 91. 54. Pattern. Masterpiece; as in 0th. v. 2. ii: "Thou cun- ning's! pattern of excelling nature." 56. Bleed afresh. Johnson remarks : " It is a tradition very generally received that the murdered body bleeds on the touch of the murderer. This was so much believed by Sir Kenelm Digby that he has endeavoured to explain the reason." According to Holinshed, this actually occurred on the occasion here repre- sented. 58. Exhales. Draws forth. Cf. 167 below. It is often used of vapours caused by the sun ; as in R. of I. 779, L. L. L. iv. 3. 70, R. ajid J. iii. 5. 13, etc. S. uses the word as if from hale, to draw, instead of the Latin halare. 65. Eat him quick. Swallow him alive. Quick ( = living) is often opposed to dead: as in Ham. v. I. 137: "for the dead, not for the quick." See also Acts, x. 42. 76. Crimes. The quartos have " evils," which the modern edi- tors generally adopt because Anne uses the word in her antithetical reply. But evils opposes knoivn evils to supposed crimes. 78. Difftis''d. The quartos and the first and second folios have " defus'd." The same form occurs in Hen. V. v. 2. 61 ; and Schmidt would retain it in both passages, making it = "shapeless." Johnson explains diff'us\l as " irregular, uncouth." 93. In thy foul throat thou liest. Thou liest deliberately. Cf. 2 Hen. IV. i. 2. 94, 97, etc. 98. Their. Referring to brothers. CL36 Notes [Act I io8. //o/p. The form regularly used by S. except in v. 3. i68 below and O^A. ii. i. 138. 109. For he was fitter, etc, Cf. Per. iv. I. lO: " The fitter, then, the gods should have her." 114. Betide. Used intransitively in ii. 4. 71 below, and with of ( = become of) in i. 3. 6. 118. Slower. " As quick was used for sprightly, so slower was put for serious'''' (Steevens). 119. Timeless. Untimely. Cf. T. G. of V. iii. i. 21 : "your timeless grave," etc. 122. Effect. Execution ; as in Macb. i. 5. 48 : — " That no compunctious visitings of nature Shake my fell purpose ^ nor keep peace between The effect and it," 129. Wrack. Wreck ; the only spelling in S. It rhymes with back in V. and A. 558, Sonn. 126. 5, Macb. v. 5. 51, etc. 149, Toad. For the old notion that the toad is venomous, see Macb. iv, 1. 6, A. V. L. ii. i. 13, etc. 152. Basilisk. This fabulous creature was supposed to kill by a glance. See T. N. iii. 4. 215, R. and J. iii. 2. 47, etc. Cf. also iv. I. 55 below. 154. A living death. Cf. R. of L, 726. Many examples of the expression might be quoted from other authors. 157. Remorseful. Pitiful, compassionate. For reniorse = pity, see iii. 7. 210 below. Lines 157-168 are omitted in the quartos. 164. That. So that ; as often. 165. Bedashed. The only instance of the word in S. 167. Exhale. See on 58 above. 170. Sjuoothing. Flattering. Cf. i. 3. 48 below : "Smile in men's faces, smooth, deceive, and cog." See also 2 Hen. VI. i. i. 156, etc. 196, I fear me. For the reflexive use, cf. Temp. v. i. 283, T. N. iii. I. 125, Rich. II. ii. 2. 149, iii. 2. 67, etc. Scene iij Notes 237 203. Vouchsafe, etc. The folio gives this line to Anne, and omits the next line. 214. Crosby House. The quartos have " Crosby Place." This magnificent mansion, still standing in Bishopsgate Street, was built in 1466 by Sir John Crosby, grocer and vi'oolman, vi'ho died in 1475. It became the residence of Richard when Duke of Glos- ter, and afterwards of Sir Thomas More, who doubtless here wrote his Life of Richard III. In 1547, after the execution of More, the house was leased by William Roper, who had married Margaret More — " her v\^ho clasp'd in her last trance Her murder'd father's head." i Here also for many years lived " Sidney's sister, Pembroke's mother," whom Ben Jonson has immortalized in his well-known epitaph. In 1672 the building became a Presbyterian meeting- house, and later a warehouse ; but in 1 83 1 a subscription was raised to restore it. It is now a popular restaurant, and the trav- eller may eat his lunch or dinner in the great hall where Richard banqueted in the olden time. This room has a fine timbered roof and the beautiful oriel window (see cut on p. 9), now filled with stained glass representing the armorial bearings of the different occupants of the house. Externally this part of the mansion retains its original form, but the front on Bishopsgate Street is modern. 218. Expedient. Expeditious. See K. John, ii. i. 60, 223, iv. 2. 268, Rich. //. i. 4. 39, etc. 227. Towards Chertsey, etc. Before this speech the quartos have " Glo. Sirs, take up the corse ; " retained in many modern eds. 228. White-Friars. The convent of the Brotherhood of the Virgin of Mount Carmel, founded by Sir Richard Grey in 1241. Here many men of note were buried. The street now known as "Whitefriars, on the right of Fleet Street, gets its name from the old convent. 1 Tennyson, Dream of Fair Women. 238 Notes [Act I 229, 230. IVas ever woman, etc. These lines recur, with varia- tions, in T. A. ii. i. 82, 83 : — " She is a woman, therefore may be woo'd ; She is a woman, therefore may be won ; " and in i Hen. VI. v. 3. 77, 78 : — " She's beautiful, and therefore to be woo'd ; She is a woman, therefore to be won." 235. My hatred. The folio reading. The my is emphatic : the bleeding witness of my hatred and malice being present. The corpse had bled in witness of Richard's hatred, not Anne's. The majority of the editors, however, read " her hatred " with the quartos, taking hatred as the repetition of hate in 233. " The wit- ness of her hatred " must then be = bearing witness to the justice of her hatred. 239. All the world to nothing. That is, the chances against me were as the world to nothing. Cf. 252 below : " My dukedom to a beggarly denier." See also R. and J. iii. 5. 215 : — " Romeo is banish'd ; and all the world to nothing, That he dares ne'er come back," etc. 242. At Tewkesbury. " Here we have the exact time of this scene ascertained, namely, August, 1471. King Edward, however, is in act ii. introduced dying. That king died in April, 1483 ; so there is an interval between this and the next act of almost twelve years. Clarence, who is represented in the preceding scene as committed to the Tower before the burial of King Henry VI., was in fact not confined nor put to death till seven years afterwards, March, 1477-8" (Malone). 247. Abase. Lower, cast down ; as in 2 Hen. VI. i. 2. 15 : " And never more abase our sight so low," etc. 250. Moiety. Here §.pparently = half, as in ii. 2. 60 below ; but it often meant some other fraction. Scene III] Notes 239 252. Denier. The twelfth part of a French ^om. Cf. i Hen. IV, iii. 3. 91 and T. of S. incl. I. 9. 255. Marvellous proper. Wonderfully handsome. For the ad- verbial marvellous, cf. Temp. iii. 3. 19, Much Ado, iv. 2. 27, Ham. ii. I. 3, iii. 2. 312, etc. Y ox proper, cf. tT/. of V. i. 2. 77, etc. 256. Be at charges for. Go to the expense of. 261. In his grave. Into his grave. Cf. i. 3. 89, 286, i. 4. 41, 146, iii. 2. 58, iv. 4. 24, and v. 3. 229 below. Scene III. — 3. Brook it ill. Take it ill. Cf. brook well in A. Y. L. i. I. 140. 5. Quick. Lively, sprightly. See on i. 2. 118 above, and cf. 196 below. 6. Betide of. See on i. 2. 114 above. 15. Determined. Resolved upon. Concluded ^^ officially de- cided. 16. Miscarry. Die ; as often. Cf. T. N. iii. 4. 70 : "I would not have him miscarry," etc. 17. Stanley. The early eds. have "Derby" or "Darby"; cor- rected by Theobald, who says : " This is a blunder of inadvertence. . . . The person here called Derby was Thomas Lord Stanley, lord steward of King Edward the Fourth's household. But this Thomas Lord Stanley was not created Earl of Derby till after the accession of Henry the Seventh." 20. The Countess Richmond. Margaret, daughter of John Beaufort, first Duke of Somerset. Her first husband was Edmund Tudor, Earl of Richmond, by whom she had one son, afterwards King Henry VII. ; her second was Sir Henry Stafford (uncle to the Duke of Buckingham in this play) ; and her third the Lord Stanley who is here addressed. 26. Envious. Malicious ; as often in S. Cf. i. 4. 37 below. 36. Ato7ie7nent. Reconciliation ; the only sense of the word in S. Cf. M. W. i. I. 33 : "to make atonement between you," etc. 39. Warn. Summon ; as the word is still used in legal Ian- 240 Notes [Act I guage. Cf. K.John, ii. i. 201 : "Who is it that hath warn'd us to the walls ? " 41. At the height. Cf. /. C. iv. 3. 217 : "We, at the height, are ready to decline." 46. Dissentious. Causing discord, seditious ; as in V. and A. 657, Cor. i. I. 167, iv. 6. 7, etc. 48. Sfiiooth. Flatter, fawn. See on i. 2. 170 above. Cog:= "deceive, especially by smooth lies" (Schmidt). Cf. M. W. iii. 3. 76 : "I cannot cog, and say thou art this and that," etc. 49. Duck with French nods. For the ridicule of French affec- tation, cf. R. and J. ii. 4. 35 : " these pardonnez-mois^'' etc. ; and for the contemptuous use of duck, T. of A. iv. 3. 18 : — " the learned pate Ducks to the golden fool." 53. Silken. Soft, effeminate ; as in K. John, v. I. 70 : "A cocker'd, silken wanton," etc. For the contemptuous Jacks (cf. 72 below), see M. of V. iii. 4. 77 : "these bragging Jacks," etc. 60. Breathing-while. Cf. V. and A. 1142 : "Bud and be blasted in a breathing- while." 61. Lewd. Vile, base. Cf. Much Ado, v. i. 341 : " this lewd fellow," etc. 65. Belike. See on i. i. 49 above. Interior = inward ; as in Cor. ii. I. 43. S. uses the adjective but twice, and the noun only in M. of V. ii. 9. 28. 68, 69. Makes hint to send, etc. The real subject of makes is royal disposition, not king. 80. Promotions. A quadrisyllable. 82. Noble. A gold coin, worth 2>s. 6d. For the play upon the word, cf. Much Ado, ii. 3. 35, Rich. II. v. 5. 67, and i Hen. IV. ii. 4. 317, 321. 83. Careful. Full of care. Cf. C. of E.v? i. 298 : "Careful hours. . . . Have written strange defeatures in ray face," etc. 84. Hap. Fortune. See on i. 2. 17 above. Scene III] Notes 241 89. Suspects. Suspicions. Cf. iii. 5. 31 below. For in = into, see on i. 2. 261 above. 90. Mean. S. often uses mean in the singular, though oftener in the plural. For the double negative in deny . . . not, cf. C. of E. iv. 2. 7 : " First he denied you had in him no right," etc. 102. I wis. Not a true verb, but a corruption of jj/ww = truly, verily. For worser., cf. M. N. D. ii. i. 208, R. and J. ii. 3. 29, iii. 2. 108, Ham. iii. 4. 157, etc. 106. Of. As in the folio ; the quartos have " v^'ith." S. uses both prepositions with acquaint, but with more frequently. For acquaint of, cf. Much Ado, iii. I. 40, W. T. ii. 2. 48, iv. 4. 423, R. and J. iii. 4. 16, etc. 109. To be so baited, etc. For baited ( = worried, as with dogs), cf. T. N. iii. I. 130, Macb. v. 8. 29, etc. Baited at does not occur elsewhere in S. 114. Tell him, etc. This line is not in the folio, and 116 is not in the quartos. 116. Adventure. Run the hazard; as in 2 Hen. VI. iii. 2. 350: — " I will repeal thee, or, be well assur'd. Adventure to be banished myself." 117. My pains. "My labours, my toils" (Johnson). Cf. 314 below. 125. Royalize. Make royal; used by S. only here. It is used by Marlowe, Greene, Peele, and others. Cf. Claudius Tiberius Nero, 1607 : — " Who means to-morrow for to royalize The triumphs," etc. 128. Were factious for. Were in the faction of, were partisans of. Cf. ii. I. 20 below. See also^. C. i. 3. 118. 130. Battle. Army; as in v. 3. 24, 89, 139, 293 below. Sir John Grey, Elizabeth's first husband, fell in the second battle of St. Alban's, which was fought on Shrove Tuesday, Feb. 17, 1460-1. RICHARD III. — 16 242 Notes [Act I His lands were not " then seized on by the conqueror " (3 Hen. VI. iii. 2. 3), for the conqueror was Margaret herself; but they came into the possession of Edward after the battle of Towton, March 29, 1461, in which the king was victorious. Margaret then appealed to the mercy of Edward, and won not only his pity but his love. 138. Party. Side. Cf. iv. 4. 524 below. 139. Mezv'd up. See on i. I. 38 above. 142. Childish-foolish. The hyphen is not in the early eds., and some modern eds. have a comma instead. Cf. iii. I, 44 below. 144. Cacod(2mon. Evil spirit ; used by S. only here. 147. Sovereign. The quartos have " lawful." For the passage, cf. 3 Hen. VI. iii. i. 94. 157. Patient. A trisyllable. See on 80 above. 139. PiWd. Pillaged, robbed ; as on p. 210 above. Qi. Rich. II. ii. I. 246, etc. 163. Gentle villain. " She means he is high by birth, low by nature ; a supreme or arch villain, a smooth-tongued and stealthy villain, who would creep away from her presence to avoid her reproaches" (Clarke). 164. Mak^st. Doest. For the play upon the word in the reply, cf. A. y. Z. i. I. 31 and L. L. L. iv. 3. 190. 167-169. Wert thou . . . abode. These lines are not in the quartos. 167. Banished. "Margaret fled into France after the battle of Hexham in 1464, and Edward soon after issued a proclamation, prohibiting any of his subjects from aiding her to return, or har- bouring her should she attempt to visit England. She remained abroad till April 14, 1471, when she landed at Weymouth. After the battle of Teu^kesbury in May, 1471, she was confined in the Tower till 1475, when she was ransomed by her father Regnier, and removed to France, where she died in 1482. The present scene is in 1477-8 ; so that her introduction here is a mere poeti- cal fiction" (Malone). Scene III] Notes 243 174. The curse my noble father, etc. See 3 Hen. VL i. 4. 66 fol. 176. Scorns. For the plural, cf. Ham. iii. i, 70 and i Hen. VL ii. 4. 77. 18 1. Hath plagti^d thy bloody deed. Cf. K. John, ii. i. 184 : '* That he is not only plagued for her sin," etc. 182. So just is God, etc. Ritson compares Thomas Lord Crof?i- well, 1602 : " How just is God, to right the innocent ! " 187. Northumberland, etc. Cf. 3 Hen. VL. i. 4. 172: "What, weeping ripe, my lord Northumberland? " 194. But. Only ; that is, could nothing less answer, etc. Peevish = silly, foolish ; as in iii. I. 31 and iv. 4. 419 below. 196. Quick. Lively, hearty. See on 5 above. 197. By swfeit. "Alluding to his luxurious life " (Johnson). 206. StalPd. Installed, invested ; the only instance of this sense in S. 212. God, L pray him. For the redundant pronoun, cf. iii. i. 10, 26 below. 214. Unlook'd. " Unlooked-for ; " which S. uses elsewhere, and which the third folio substitutes here. 219. Them. For heaven as a plural (= the heavenly powers), cf. Rich. LL. i. 2. 7, Ham. iii. 4. 173, 0th. iv. 2. 47, etc. 228. Elvish-mark'' d. " The common people in Scotland have still an aversion to those who have any natural defect or redun- dancy, as thinking them marked oviV for mischief" (Steevens). In hog there is an allusion to the boar in Richard's armorial bearings. The Mirror for Magistrates contains the following "Complaint of Collingbourne, who was cruelly executed for making a rime : " — " For where I meant the king by name of hog, I only alluded to his badge the bore : To Lovel's name I added more, — our dog; Because most dogs have borne that name of your. These metaphors I us'd with other more. As cat and rat, the half-names of the rest. To hide the sense that they so wrongly prest." 244 Notes [Act I The rhyme of Collingbourne, as given in Heywood's Edward IV.y was the following : — " The cat, the rat, and Lovell our dog Doe rule all England under a hog, The crooke backt boore the way hath found To root our roses from our ground. Both flower and bud will he confound. Till king of beasts the swine be crown'd : And then the dog, the cat, and rat. Shall in his trough feed and be fat." The persons meant were the king, Catesby, Ratcliff, and Lovel, as the " Complaint," quoted above, explains : — " Catesbye was one whom I called a cat, A craftie lawyer catching all he could ; The second Ratcliffe, whom I named a rat, A cruel beast to gnaw on whom he should : Lord Lovel barkt and byt whom Richard would, Whom I therefore did rightly terme our dog. Wherewith to rhyme I cald the king a hog." That 'Lovel was a common name for a dog is evident from The His- torie of Jacob and Esau, an interlude, 1568 (quoted by Steevens) : — " Then come on at once, take my quiver and my bowe ; Fette lovell my hounde, and my home to blowe." Gray, in The Bard, refers to Richard thus : — " The bristled boar in infant gore Wallows beneath the thorny shade." Cf. iii. 2. II, 28, 73, iii. 4. 81, iv. 5. 2, v. 2. 7, and v. 3. 157 below. 230. The slave of nature. One who is the lowest, the most ser- vile, in the whole realm of nature. 233. Rag. Contemptuous ; as in v. 3. 329 below : " these over- Scene III] Notes 245 weening rags of France; " and T. of A. iv. 3. 271: "thy father, that poor rag." 235. Cry thee me?'cy. Beg your pardon. Cf. M. W. iii. 5. 27, Muck Ado, i. 2. 26, etc. See also ii. 2. 104 and v. 3. 225 below. 238. Make the period to. Finish, conclude. Cf. R. of L. 380: " the period of their ill ; " 2 Hen. IV. iv. 5. 231 : " My worldly business makes a period," etc. 241. Flourish. Varnish, gloss. Cf. Sonn. 60. 9: "Time doth transfix the flourish set on youth ; " L. L. L. ii. i. 14: "the painted flourish of your praise," etc. 242. Bottled spider. A big bloated spider. Cf. iv. 4. 81 below. Steevens fills half a page with ridicule of one " Robert Heron, Esquire," who had made it mean " a spider kept in a bottle long fasting, and of consequence the more spiteful and venomous." 246. Bunch-back'd. Changed by some editors to hunchbacked, but the epithet is repeated in iv. 4. 81 below. 248. Move our patience. That is, move it to wrath. Cf. 288 below: "awake God's gentle-sleeping peace;" Much Ado, v. i. 102: "we will not wake your patience; " Rich. II. i. 3. 132: "to wake our peace," etc. 256. Fire-new. Fresh from the mint, like brand-new. Cf. Z. L. L.'i. I. 179: "fire-new words ; " T. N. iii. 2. 23: "fire-new from the mint," etc. He had been created Marquess of Dorset on the i8th of April, 1475. 264. Aery. A brood of nestlings (literally, " an eagle's or hawk's nest"). Cf. K. John, v. 2. 149: "And like an eagle o'er his aery towers ; " Ham. ii. 2. 354 : " an aery of children," etc. 277. My charity. The charity shown me. My is the " objective genitive " 282. Now fair befall thee. Good fortune be thine. Cf. iii. 5.46 below. 288. Awake, etc. See on 248 above, and cf. the carrying out of the metaphor in the passage from Rich. II. 293. Their marks. See on 228 and 230 above. 246 Notes [Act I 296. Respect. Regard, care for ; as in i. 4. 15 1 below. 305. Muse zvhy. The quartos have " wonder," which means the same. Cf. K.Johti, iii. i. 317: "I muse your majesty doth seem so cold; " 2 Hen. IV. iv. I. 167: "I muse you make so slight a question," etc. 314. Frank' d up. K frank was a hog-sty. Cf. 2 Hen. IV. ii. 2. 160 : " doth the old boar feed in the old frank? " S. uses the noun nowhere else, and the verb only here and in iv. 5. 3 below. 317. Scath. Harm, injury. QA. K. John, ii. I. 78: "To do offence and scath," etc. 318. Well advis''d. "In one's sound senses, not mad" (Schmidt). Cf. C. of E. ii. 2. 215: "Sleeping or waking ? Mad or well-advis'd ? " See also iv. 4. 513 below. The early eds. rarely direct that a speech be spoken aside ; but the folio here inserts " Speakes to himselfe.''^ 325. Abroach. Used only with set, and only in a bad sense. Cf. 2 Hen. IV. iv. 2. 14 and R. and J. i. i. ill. 328. Beweep. See on i. 2. 165 above, and cf. begnaw in 222 above. 337. Forth of. The quartos have " out of." For forth of, cf. Temp. V. I. 160, Rich. II. iii. 2. 20^, J. C. iii. 3. 3, etc. On the passage, cf. M. of V.\. 3. 99 : "The devil can cite Scripture for his purpose." 340. Stout-resolved. Boldly resolute ; not hyphened in the early eds., but probably a compound adjective, as many editors make it. 347. Obdurate. Accented on the penult ; as in iii. I. 39 below, and always in S. Cf. V. and A. 199: "Art thou obdurate, flinty, hard as steel?" See also M. of V. iv. i. 8, 2 Hen. VI. iv. 7. 122, etc. 348. Well-spoken. See on i. i. 29 above. 353. Your eyes drop millstones, etc. Apparently, as Steevens notes, a proverbial expression. Cf. Ccesar and Pompey, 1607: " Men's eyes must millstones drop, when fools shed tears." For fall (often = let fall) the quartos have " drop." Cf. i. 4. 240 below. Scene IV] Notes 247 Scene IV. — Enter Clarence and Keeper. " The quartos have the direction, ^ Enter Clarence, Brokenbury ;'' and they prefix either ' Bro.^ or ' Brok.'' to all the replies to Clarence and the two Murderers. But the folio has not only ' Enter Clarence and Keeper,'' but prefixes ' Keep.^ to all the replies to Clarence, down to the line ' I will, my lord,' etc., inclusive ; and then has the direction, * Enter Brakenbury the Lieutenant^ to which character it assigns, by the prefix ' Bra.,' the ensuing lines, ' Sorrow breaks seasons,' etc., and all the replies to the Murderers, until they are left alone with their victim." The stage-direction and the prefixes of the quarto are probably the result of the limited number of actors in Shakespeare's company when the play was first produced, which caused the parts of the Keeper and Brakenbury to be assigned to one performer, whose MS. of his part was probably used in getting out the surreptitious edition of this very popular play. 3. Of fearful dreams, of ugly sights. The quartos have " of ugly sights, of ghastly dreams." 4. Faithftd. " Not an infidel" (Johnson). 13. The hatches. The deck ; as in 2 Hen. VI. iii. 2. 103 : " I stood upon the hatches in the storm," etc. 14. Cited up. Cf. R. of L. 524: "Shalt have thy trespass cited up in rhymes." 27. Unvalued. Here = inestimable., like invaluable now. In the only other instance of the word in S. (^Ham. i. 3. 9) it is = not valued. 40. Bulk. Body (Malone), or, rather, the chest ; as in Ham. ii. I. 95 : "it did seem to shatter all his bulk ; " and R. of L. 467 : "her heart . . . Beating her bulk." 46. Sour. Morose. Cf. Rich. II. v. 3. 121 : "my sour hus- band," etc. Sour in this figurative sense is rather a favourite word with S. 55. Fleeting. Inconstant. Cf. A. and C. v. 2. 240: "The fleet- ing moon;" opposed to "marble-constant," and = " the incon- stant moon " of R. and J. ii. 2, 109. 248 Notes [Act I 64. No marvel . . . though. No wonder if; as in V. and A. 290, Sonn. 148. II, M. N. D. ii. 2. 196, etc. 69-72. O God! . . . children ! These four lines are not in the quartos. 71. In. Either = upon or = in the case of; as in R. of L. 77 : "triumph in so false a foe." See also Rich. II. ii. 3. 10 : "In Ross and "Willoughby," etc. 72. My guiltless wife. The wife of Clarence died more than a year before he was confined in the Tower. 80. And for, etc. "They often suffer real miseries for imagi- nary and unreal gratifications" (Johnson). Clarke explains it: "and instead of pleasures of imagination, which they never ex- perience, they often experience a multitude of restless cares." He adds : " This seems to us to be a reflection naturally growing out of Clarence's description of his late dreams ; which, instead of being filled with images of beauty and peace, are crowded with troublous and terrible visions." 118. My holy humour. The quarto reading; the folios have " this passionate humour of mine." The ironical holy seems more in keeping with the context. 121. Faith. Omitted in the foho, doubtless on account of the statute of James I. against irreverent language on the stage. So in 123 below the folio changes Zounds to "Come." 137. Shamefaced. The first quarto has "shamefast," which was the more common spelling of the time, and etymologically the proper one. 147. Him. Referring, not to the devil, but to conscience, "which is suddenly thus impersonated, as being one influential spirit brought in opposition to another" (Clarke). Insinuate with. Ingratiate himself with you. Cf. V. and A. 1012: "With Death she humbly doth insinuate;" and A. Y. L. epil. 7 : " nor cannot insinuate with you in the behalf of a good play." 151. Tall. Often = " stout, daring, fearless, and strong" (Johnson). Cf. p. 228 above. Scene IV] Notes 249 153. On the costard. On the head. A costard was properly a kind of apple (whence costernionger or cosiardinonger), and the term was contemptuously applied to the head as being round like an apple. Cf. AI. W. iii. i. 14, Z. Z. Z. iii. i. 71, and Lear, iv. 6. 247. S. uses hilts of a single weapon five times, hilt only three times. 156. A sop. Anything steeped or softened in liquor. Cf. 7'. and C i. 3. 113 : — " the bounded waters Should lift their bosoms higher than the shores, And make a sop of all this solid globe." See also T. of S. iii. 2. 175, 178. 158-160. Soft, he wakes, etc. The quartos have: — " I Murd. Hark! he stirs : shall I strike ? 2 Murd. No, first let 's reason with him." 160, Reason. Talk. Cf. M. of V. ii. 8. 27: "I reason'd with a Frenchman yesterday," etc. See also ii. 3. 39, iii. i. 132, and iv. 4- 533 below. 163. What art thou ? Who are you ? A common use of what. 183. For evidejice = witness or witnesses, cf. Lear, iii. 6. 37 and Much Ado, iv. 1. 38. 184. Quest. Inquest, jury. Cf. Sonn. \(i. 10 : — " To 'aide this title is impanneled A quest of thoughts, all tenants to the heart." See also LJam. v. i. 24: "crowner's quest law." 187. Convict. Convicted. Cf. contract in iii. 7. 178 and acquit in V. 4. 16 below. 189. To have redemption. The folio reads "for any goodness," and omits the next line ; doubtless on account of the statute re- ferred to in the note on 121 above. 195. Erroneous. Mistaken ; not elsewhere applied to a person by S. He uses the word only here and in 3 Lien. VI. ii. 5. 90. 198. Spurn at. See on i. 2. 42 above. 250 Notes [Act I 203. Receive the sacrament. Take an oath. Cf. Rich. IL iv. i. 328 or K.John, v. 2. 6. See also v. 4. 31 below. 204. In quarrel of. In the cause of, on behalf of. Cf. Hen. V. iv. I. 180: "in the king's quarrel," etc. 210. Dear. Extreme. For the intensive use of dear, cf. v. 2. 21 below, where for dearest the quartos have "greatest." 221. Gallant-springing. "Growing up in beauty" (Schmidt). The hyphen is not in the early eds., but was inserted by Pope. 222. Novice. "Youth, one yet new to the world" (Johnson). 223. My brotheJ'''s love. My love for my brother. So, in the next line, thy brother'' s love = our love for thy brother. 237. And charged, etc. The line is omitted in the folios. 240. Millstones. See on i. 3. 353 above ; and for another, allu- sion to the proverb, cf. T. and C. i. 2. 158 : — " Pandarus. But there was such laughing ! Queen Hecuba laughed that her eyes ran o'er. Cressida. With millstones." For lessoned, cf. Cor. ii. 3. 185 : "As you were lesson'd ; " T. G. of V. ii. 7. 5 : " To lesson me," etc. 246. Labour. Work for. For the transitive use, cf. Much Ado, V. I. 292: "can labour aught in sad invention," etc. 257. Relent! His cowardly, etc. The first quarto gives the pas- sage thus : — " Cla. Relent, and saue your soules. I Relent, 'tis cowardly and womanish. Cla. Not to relent, is beastly, sauage, diuelish, My friend, I spie some pitty in thy lookes : Oh if thy eye be not a flatterer, Come thou on my side, and intreat for me, A begging Prince, what beggar pitties not ? " The folio gives it thus with the addition of five lines : — " Clar. Relent, and saue your soules : Which of you, if you were a Princes Sonne, Scene I] Notes 251 Being pent from Liberty, as I am now, If two such murtherers as your selues came to you, Would not intreat for life, as you would begge Were you in my distresse, I Relent? no: 'T is cowardly and womanish. Cla. Not to relent, is beastly, sauage, diuellish : " etc. After the passage had been much discussed, Tyrwhitt discovered that the five Hnes added on the revision of the play were wrongly inserted after the first line of the first of these two speeches, whereas they were intended for the same position in the second. ACT II Scene I. — 5. For part = depart, cf. M. of V. ii. 7. 77: "thus losers part," etc. ; and for part to, cf. T. of A. iv. 2. 21 : — " we must all part Into this sea of air." 8. Dissemble not, etc. " Do not cherish a concealed hatred, but swear a mutual love" (Clarke). 12. Dally. Trifle. Cf. iii. 7. 73 and v. i. 20 below. 20. Factious. See on i. 3. 128 above. 30. Embracements. Used oftener by S. than embraces. Cf. C. of E. i. I. 44, W. T. V. I. 114, Cor. i. 3. 4, etc. 33. But . . . doth cherish. Instead of cherishing. 44. Period. Completion. Cf. i. 3. 238 above. 45. And, in good time, ^\.c. The folios read : — " Buc. And in good time, Heere comes Sir Richard Ratcliffe and the Duke." with the stage-direction ** Enter Ratcliffe, and Gloster.^^ Spedding remarks: "Here the alteration in the stage- direction was no doubt intended. Sir Richard Ratcliffe is described by More as one l§2 Notes [Act II * whose service the Protector specially used in that counsel [the murder of the lords at Pomfret] and the execution of such lawless enterprises, as a man who had been long secret with him,' etc. He had an important part in the action of the play, though he scarcely speaks a dozen times all through. S. probably thought it advisable to bring him and his relation to Richard into prominence, that when he appears presently in the execution of his office the spec- tators might know who he was. Therefore, though he is a mute in this scene, he was to come in with Richard : and ' Ratcliffe ' or ' Sir Richard Ratcliffe' was written in the margin, meaning it to be added to the stage-direction ' Enter Gloster.' The printer or the transcriber mistook it for an insertion meant for the text, and thrust it into Buckingham's speech, where it disorders the metre and does not come in at all naturally." 51. Szvelling. Angry. Cf. i Hen. VI. iii. i. 26: "From envi- ous malice of thy swelling heart," etc. 53. Heap. Throng. Cf./. C. i. 3- 23: — " and there were drawn Upon a heap a hundred ghastly women," etc. 66. Of you. Lord Rivers, etc. The reading of the first four quartos ; the folios have : " Of you and you, Lord Rivers and of Dorset ; " and after 67 they insert the line, " Of you Lord Wood- vill, and Lord Scales of you." There was no such person as Lord Woodvill. 69. / do not knotv, etc. Milton, in his Eikojtoklastes, has the following reference to this passage : " The poets, and some English, have been in this point so mindful of decorum, as to put never more pious words in the mouth of any person than of a tyrant. I shall not instance an abstruse author, wherein the king might be less conversant, but one whom we well know was the closest com- panion of these his solitudes, William Shakespeare ; who intro- duced the person of Richard the Third, speaking in as high a strain of piety and mortification as is uttered in any passage in this Scene I] Notes 253 book, and sometimes to the same sense and purpose with some words in this place. I intended (saith he) not only to oblige my friends, but my enemies. The like saith Richard : — " ' I do not know that Englishman alive, With whom my soul is any jot at odds, More than the infant that is born to-night : I thank my God for my humility,' Other stuff 1 of this sort may be read throughout the tragedy, wherein the poet used not much license in departing from the truth of history, which delivers him a deep dissembler, not of his affections only, but his religion." 90. Lag. Late, tardy. Cf. lag of (^= later than) in Lear, i. 2. 6 : " Lag of a brother." Buried is here a trisyllable. 92. Nearer in bloody thoughts, etc. Cf. Macb. ii. 3. 146: — " the near in blood. The nearer bloody." 94. Go current from suspicion. Pass free from suspicion, are believed to be all right. For the metaphor, cf. i. 3. 256 above and iv. 2. 9 below. 99. The forfeit. That is, the thing forfeited, or his servant's life. Cf. M. of V. iv. i. 37: "To have the due and forfeit of my bond," etc. 107. Be advis'd. Be considerate, be not hasty. Cf. i. 3. 318 above. 115. Lap. Wrap. Cf. Macb. i. 2. 54: "lapp'd in proof; " and Cymb. v. 5. 360: "lapp'd In a most curious mantle." See also Milton, L All. 136: "Lap me in soft Lydian airs." 119. Fluck'd. A favourite word with S. Cf. i. i. 55, ii. 2. 58, iii. I. 36, iv. 2. 64, and v. 4. 19 in the present play. 120, To put it. As to put it. Cf. iii. 2. 27 below. 1 Matter; not used contemptuously. Cf. Hen. VIIL iii. 2. 137 : " You are full of heavenly stuff," etc. 254 Notes [Act II 127. Ungracious, Impious, wicked, Cf. Rich. II. ii. 3. 89: — " and that word grace In an ungracious mouth is but profane; " and I Hen. IV. ii. 4. 490: " Swearest thou, ungracious boy ?" 129. Beholding. Beholden; the only form in S. Cf. iii. i. 107 below. 138. Still. Constantly ; as very often. Scene II. — Enter the Duchess of York. "Cecily, daughter of Ralph Neville, first Earl of Westmoreland, and widow of Richard Duke of York, who was killed at the battle of Wakefield in 1460. She survived her husband thirty-five years, living till the year 1495" (Malone). 8. Cousins. Here = grandchildren. The word is applied to nephews, uncles, brothers-in-law, etc. Cf. iii. I. 2 below. 14. Importune. Accented on the penult, as regularly in S. 15. Prayers. A dissyllable, as usually in S. Cf. v. I. 21 below. 18. Incapable. That is, unable to comprehend. 30. Dugs. " Of old this word was used in no derogatory sense, and merely as we now use breasts" (White). Cf. 2 Hen. VI. iii. 2. 393 : — " As mild and gentle as the cradle-babe Dying with mother's dug between its lips." 38. Impatience. A quadrisyllable. See on i. 3. 80 above. 39. Act. Suggested by the preceding scene. Cf. K. John^ ii. 1.376: — " As in a theatre, whence they gape and point At your industrious scenes and acts of death." See also Temp. ii. i. 252, T. N.m. I. 254, and Macb. ii. 4. 5. 46. Ne^ er- changing night. The quartos have " perpetual rest." Cf. i. 4. 47 above. 50. His images. " The children by whom he was represented " (Johnson). Scene II] Notes 255 51. But noiv two mirrors, etc. Cf. R. of L. 1758: — " Poor broken glass, I often did behold In thy sweet semblance my old age new born ; But now that fair fresh mirror, dim and old. Shows me a bare-bon'd death by time out-worn." See also Sontt. 3. 9 : — "Thou art thy mother's glass, and she in thee Calls back the lovely April of her prime ; So thou through windows of thine age shalt see Despite of wrinkles this thy golden time." The mirrors are Edward and Clarence ; the false glass is Gloster. 60. Moiety. See on i. 2. 250 above. 61. Overgo. Go beyond, exceed ; as in Sonn. 103. 7: "That overgoes my blunt invention quite." O''ergo is = go over, travel, in L. L. L. V. 2. 196 : " Of many weary miles you have o'ergone." 68. Reduce. Bring, convey. See also on v. 4. 49 beloM'. 69. The watery moon is "the moon, the governess of floods" (^M. N. D. ii. I. 103J or the ruler of the tides. See also I Hen. IV. i. 2. 31 : "being governed, as the sea is, by the moon." 77. Dear. In a double senses: "of one so dearly loved," and "so intensely severe" (Clarke). 81. ParceWd. "Particular" (Schmidt), or "separately dedi- cated to particular objects" (Clarke). 89-100. Co77ifort . . . throne. These lines are found only in the folios. 94. Opposite with. Cf. T. N'. ii. 5. 162: " opposite with a kins- man." 95. For. Because. See on i. i. 58 above. 104. Cry you 77iercy. Beg your pardon. See on i. 3. 235 above. 112. Cloudy, That is, with "cloudy brow" (2 Hen. VI. iii. i. 155) or "cloudy looks" {P.P. 312). See also Te^np. ii. i. 142 and I Hen. IV. iii. 2. 83. 118. Splintered. Secured by splints; as in the other instance 256 Notes [Act II of the verb in S., 0th. ii. 3. 329 : •' this broken joint . . . entreat her to splinter." 120. Me seemeth. It seems to me. Cf. 2 Hen. VI. iii. i. 23: " Me seemeth then it is no poHcy," etc. The ?ne is a dative, as in melhiiiks. 121. Fei. Equivalent to the " fetcht " of the quartos. Cf. Hen. V. iii. I. 18: "Whose blood is fet from fathers of war-proof." See another example in note on i. 3. 228 above. " Edward, the young prince, in his father's lifetime and at his demise, kept his household at Ludlow, as Prince of Wales, under the governance of Antony Woodville, Earl of Rivers, his uncle by the mother's side. The intention of his being sent thither was to see justice done in the Marches ; and by the authority of his pres- ence to restrain the Welshmen, who were wild, dissolute, and ill- disposed, from their accustomed murders and outrages " (Theobald). 127. The estate is green. Referring to the youth of the king. 129. As please himself. As may please himself. For the imper- sonal verb, see on 120 above. For the form, cf. A. Y. L. epil. 14: *'as much of this play as please you," etc. 130. Apparettt. Evident, manifest ; as in iii. 5. 29 below. 133. Co?7ipact. The accent on the last syllable, as regularly in S. except in i Hen. VI. v. 4. 163, which is probably not his. 142. Ludlow. The folios misprint " London," as also in 153 below. Ludlow Castle is in the town of Ludlow in Shropshire, near the Welsh boundary, and was built shortly after the Norman Conquest. Edward IV. repaired it as a residence for the Prince of Wales and the appointed place for meeting his deputies, the Lords Presidents, who held in it the Court of the Marches, for transacting the busi- ness of the principality. Here, at the time represented in the play, the prince, twelve years old, kept a mimic court with a council. Ordinances for the regulation of his household were drawn up by his father not long before his death, prescribing his religious duties, his studies, his meals, and his sports. No man is to sit at his board except such as Earl Rivers shall allow ; and while he is at table it Scene III] Notes 257 is ordered " that there be read before him noble stories, as behoveth a prince to understand ; and that the communication at all times, in his presence, be of virtue, honour, cunning [knowledge], wis- dom, and deeds of worship, and nothing that shall move him to vice." Sir Henry Sidney, the father of Sir Philip Sidney, resided here while Lord President of the Marches, and extensive additions were then made to the castle. In 1634, when the Earl of Bridge- water was Lord President, Milton's Cotmis was represented at Ludlow ; and here also Butler, who was Steward of the Castle under Lord Carbery, wrote part of Hudibras. At present the structure is a grand and imposing ruin. The great hall, where Comus was first played, is roofless, and little remains to show the ancient splendour of the other apartments ; but the Norman keep, no feet high, ivy-mantled to the top, and the circle of smaller towers about it, are still standing, a conspicuous landmark on the rocky hill above the town. See cut on p. 201. 144. Censures. Opinions. Cf. Macb. v. 4. 14 : " Our just cen- sures," etc. 147. Sort. Find, seek. Cf. R. of L. 899: "When wilt thou sort an hour great strifes to end?" 3 Hen. VI. v. 6. 85: "But I will sort a pitchy day for thee," etc. 148. Index. Prelude, prologue; the index having been for- merly put at the beginning of a book. Cf. iv. 4. 85 below. 150. My other self. Cf. y. C. ii. I. 274: "to me, your self, your half;" Sonn. 10. 13: "Make thee another self, for love of me;" Id. 73. 8 : " Death's second self," etc. 152. I, as a child, etc. "This, from that arch-schemer Richard, shows his subtle mode of making men's weaknesses subservient to his own views ; since he affects to be guided by Buckingham's superior ability in craft and strategy, of which he knows him to be proud" (Clarke). Cf. iii. 5. 5 fol. below. Scene III. — 4. Seldom comes the better. A proverbial saying = good news is rare. Reed quotes The English Courtier, 1586: "as RICHARD III. — 17 258 Notes [Act II the proverbe sayth, seldome come the better." It is also found in Ray's Proverbs. 5. Giddy. Excitable. 8. God help the zuhile ! God help us now! Cf. iii. 6. 10 below: " Here 's a good world the while ! " II. Woe to that land, etc. A quotation from Ecclesiastes, x. 16: " Woe to thee, O land, when thy king is a child ! " 13-15. That in his nonage, etc. That in his riper years he him- self, and till he comes of age his council, shall govern well. It is like ii. 4. 59 below, except for the inversion of the clauses in the latter part. Cf. W. T. iii. 2. 164, 203, Macb. i. 3. 60, ii. 3. 45 (where there is an inversion), etc. 18. Wot. Knows; used only in the present tense and the par- ticiple wotting. Cf. iii. 2. 89 below, and Genesis, xxi. 26, xxxix, 8, xliv. 15, etc, 28. Haught. Haughty. Cf. Rich. II. iv. i. 254, 3 Hen. VI. ii. I. 169, etc. 30. Solace. Take comfort, be happy. Cf. R. and J. iv. 5. 47: " But one thing to rejoice and solace in;" and Cy?)ib. i. 6. 86: — " Lamentable ! What, To hide me from the radiant sun and solace r the dungeon by a snuff? " 36. Sort. Ordain; as in M. of V. \. i. 132 : "But God sor* all ! " 39. You cannot reason ahtiost. You can scarcely talk. See on i. 4. 160 above. 40. Looks not heavily. Cf. i. 4. I above and iii. 4. 48 below. 41. Still. Ever, always. See on ii. i. 138 above. 42. Instinct. Accented on the last syllable, as regularly in S. On the passage, cf. Holinshed : " Before such great things, men's minds of a secret instinct of nature misgive them ; as the sea with- out wind swelleth of himself some time before a tempest." 43. Ensuing. Coming, impending; as in Rich. II. ii. i. 68: Scene IV] Notes 259 "ensuing death," etc. /'rc^y= experience ; as in J. C. ii. I. 21: " 't is a common proof," etc. Scene IV. — i, 2, Last night, etc. The first quarto reads : — " Last night I heare they lay at Northampton, At Stonistratford will they be to night." The folio has : — " Last night I heard they lay at Stony Stratford, And at Northampton they do rest to-night." According to Hall they did actually lie at Stony Stratford (which is twelve miles nearer to London) and were the next morning taken back by Gloster to Northampton, where they spent the next night; but the next line favours the quarto reading, as the archbishop would not speak of the possibility of their making the journey of sixty miles from Northampton in a single day. The account, more- over, seems to be that of a regular progression. 23. Had been remember' d. Had thought of it. Cf. A. V. L. iii. 5. 131 : "And, now I am remember'd, scorn'd at me," etc. 28. Could gnaw a crtist, etc. According to the chroniclers, he was born " not untoothed." See p. 209 above. 34. / cannot tell, etc. Of course his mother had told him, but he is " too shrewd " to say so. 35. Parlous. A popular corruption oi perilous, often used ironi- cally. Cf. iii. I. 154 below, and M. N. D. iii. I. 14, etc. Parlous boy = enfant terrible (Herford). 37. Pitchers have ears. Malone remarks that S. has not quoted the proverb correctly, and cites A Dialogue by William Bulleyn in which it occurs in the still familiar form, " Small pitchers have great ears." Cf. T. of S. iv. 4. 52 : " Pitchers have ears, and I have many servants." This example suggests that the meaning may be, as Schmidt gives it, "there may be listeners overhearing us." 45. For what offence ? The quartos give this speech to " Car.''^ 26o Notes [Act II (Cardinal), and the folios to ^^A?'chy; but, as the former have "lady" in 48, Johnson transferred it to Queen Elizabeth. 49. Ay me. Equivalent to " ah me ! " which is found only in R. and J. v. i. 10. Ay me! occurs often in the plays. 51. Jet. The quarto reading. Jut a.nd jet are forms of the same word, and mean to protrude, to thrust out. The latter form, how- ever, was used especially to signify a pompous or pretentious gait. Cf. T. N. ii. 5. 36: "How he jets under his advanced plumes! " and Cymb. iii. 3. 5 : — " Are arch'd so high that giants may jet through And keep their impious turbans on," etc. Jut (= project) occurs only in T. of A. i. 2. 237. 52. Aweless. Inspiring no awe. In K. John, i. I. 266 ("the aweless lion ") it is = fearless. 54. Map. A picture or image ; as often in S. Cf. Rich. II. v. 4. 12: "Thou map of honour," etc. 59. For me, etc. See on ii. 3. 13 above. 61. Clean overblown. For dean = completely, cf. Rich. II. iii. I. 10, etc. ; and for overblown in this figurative sense, T. of S. v. 2. 3 and Rich, II. iii. 2. 190. 64. Spleen. Hate, malice; as in Hen. VIII. i. 2. 174, ii. 4. 89, Cor. iv. 5. 97, etc. In the next line the folios misprint " earth " for death. 66. To sanctuary. That is, to the sanctuary at Westminster. This old building stood where Westminster Hospital now stands (then within the precincts of the Abbey), and retained its privileges as a refuge for criminals until the dissolution of the monastery, and for debtors until 1602. This was the second time that Elizabeth had fled hither ; the first having been in 1470, when with her mother and her three daughters she was the guest of Abbot Milling until the birth of her son Edward, November i of that year. 71. 77^1? seal I keep. That is, as lord chancellor. Hall says: "Whereupon the bishop called up all his servants and took with Scene I] Notes 261 him the great seal, and came before day to the queen, about whom he found much heaviness, rumble, haste, business, conveyance and carriage of her stuff into sanctuary." Betide = may it betide or happen. 72. Tender. Regard, care for. See on i. I. 44 above. "After- wards, however, this obsequious archbishop, to ingratiate himself with King Richard III., put his majesty's badge, the hog, upon the gate of the Public Library, Cambridge" (Steevens). ACT III Scene I. — Cardinal Bouchier. Thomas Bouchier, or Bourchier, was made a cardinal and elected Archbishop of Canterbury in 1464. He died in i486. ' 1. Yotir chamber. London was anciently called Camera Regis, or the King''s Chamber. The title was given to it immediately after^ the Norman Conquest. Steevens quotes Heywood, If You Knozu Not Ale, etc. : " This city, our great chamber." So Coventry w^as sometimes called " the Prince's Chamber." 2. Cousin. Here = nephew. See on ii. 2. 8 above. 10. God he knoivs. Cf. i. 3. 212 above, and 26 below. In iii. 7. 233, the quartos have "For God he knows." 11. Jumpeth. Accords, agrees; as in T. N. v. i. 259, 0th. i. 3. 5, etc. 22. Shig. Cf. C. of E. ii. 2. 196: "thou drone, thou snail, thou slug," etc. 24. hi good tijne. Luckily, happily (Fr. de bonne heure). Cf. 95 and iv. i. 12 below, and ii. i. 45 above. See also iii. 4. 21. 30. Perforce. By force ; as in 36 below. See on i. i. 116 above, where it is = of necessity. 31. Peevish. Wayward, childish ; the most common meaning in S. 262 Notes [Act in 35. Deny. Refuse, say no ; as in R. of L. 513 : " If thou deny, then force must work my way," etc. 36. Pluck. See on ii. I. 119 above. 39. Obdurate. For the accent, see on i. 3. 347 above. 44. Senseless-obstinate. Unreasonably obstinate. Cf. senseless = unreasonable, in C. of E. iv. 4. 24, T. of S. i. 2. 36, A. IV. ii. i. 127, etc. 45. Too ceremonious and traditional. Too much influenced by ceremonious usage and tradition. 46. Weigh it but with the grossness, etc. " Examine it with the plainness and simplicity of our times — not ceremoniously and tra- ditionally, with reference to strict religious usages and old customs " (Verplanck) ; or with " the less nice considerations of the present time, as compared with the cardinal's over-scrupulous observance." This seems on the whole the most satisfactory explanation of a puz- zling and much-disputed passage. Johnson thought the meaning to be, " Compare the act of seizing him with the gross and licentious practices of these times, it will not be considered a violation of sanctuary." Various emendations have been proposed. 55. Oft have I heard, etc. This is taken from Hall, who follows More. See p. 211 above. 63. // think' st best. "It seems best" (the reading of first and second quartos). For the impersonal use of thinks, cf. Ham. v. 2. 63 : " Does it not, thinks 't thee," etc. 65. Repose you. Rest yourself. For the reflexive use, cf. Rich. II. ii. 3. 161 : "and there repose you for this night," etc. 68. Of any place. Of all places. Cf. 2 Hen. VI. i. 3. 167 : "That York is most unmeet of any man," etc. The inaccuracy is still common. 71, Re-edified. Rebuilt; the original meaning of the word. Cf. r.^.i. 1.351: — " This monument five hundred years hath stood, Which I have sumptuously re-edified." Scene I] Notes 263 S. uses edify only in the modern secondary sense ; as in T. N.y. i. 298, Ham. V. 2. 162, etc. 72. Record. S. accents the noun on either syllable, as suits the measure. Cf. Rich. II. i, i. 30 with Id. iv. i. 230. 76. Methinks. The thinks (= it seems) is the same impersonal verb as in 63 above. See on i. 4. 9 above. 77. Retaird. Retold. Cf. iv. 4. 337 below. 79. So wise, etc. Steevens quotes the Latin proverb, " Is cadet ante senem, qui sapit ante dit-m;" and Reed adds from Bright's Treatise 071 Melancholy, 1586: " I have knowne children languish- ing of the splene, obstructed and altered in temper, talke -with gravitie and wisdome, surpassing those tender yeares, and their judgement carrying a marvellous imitation of the wisdome of the ancient, having after a sorte attained that by disease, which other have by course of years; whereon, I take it, the proverbe ariseth, that they be of short life who are of wit so pregnant." 81. Characters. "Here used quibblingly in its sense of written signs, and in its sense of marked dispositions ; referring apparently to Julius Caesar's renown, and really to the young prince's clever- ness. There is also an ambiguity in lives, which Gloster applies ostensibly to the endurance of fame, but in fact to the continuance of his nephew's life " (Clarke). S. accents the verb on either the first or second syllable ; the noun on the first, except here. 82. The formal Vice, Iniqjiity. On the Vice in the old morali- ties, Gifford remarks : " He appears to have been a perfect coun- terpart of the Harlequin of the modern stage, and had a twofold office : to instigate the hero of the piece to wickedness, and, at the same time, to protect him from the devil, whom he was permitted to buffet and baffle with his wooden sword, till the process of the story required that both the protector and the protected should be carried off by the fiend ; or the latter driven roaring from the stage by some miraculous interposition in favour of the repentant offender." Knight adds : " This note is appended to a passage in the first scene of Ben Jonson's The Devil is an Ass. We learn 264 Notes [Act III from this scene that there were Vices of various ranks, which had their proper appellations : — " ' Satan. What Vice ? What kind wouldst thou have it of ? Pug. Why any : Fraud, Or Covetousness, or Lady Vanity, Or old Iniquity,' We have here then the very personage to which Richard refers ; and Jonson brings him upon the scene to proclaim his own excel- lencies, in a style of which the following is a specimen : — " ' What is he calls upon me, and would seem to lack a Vice ? Ere his words be half spoken, I am with him in a trice : Here, there, and everywhere, as the cat is with the mice : True Vetus Iniquitas. Lack'st thou cards, friend, or dice ? I will teach thee to cheat, child, to cog, lie, and swagger. And ever and anon to be drawing forth thy dagger : To swear by Gogs-nowns, like a lusty Juventus, In a cloak to thy heel, and a hat like a pent-house.' Satan, however, will have nothing to do with Iniquity, whom he holds to be obsolete : — " ' They are other things That are received now upon earth for Vices ; Stranger and newer ; and changed every hour.' " Iniquity was, no doubt, a character whose attributes were always essentially the same ; who was dressed always according to one fashion ; who constantly went through the same round of action ; who had his own peculiar cant words — something, in fact, very similar to that most interesting relic of antiquity, Punch, who, in spite of meddling legislation, still beats his wife and still defies the devil. It is to this fixed character of the ' Vice Iniquity ' that we think Shakespeare alludes when he calls him * the y2>r;;/a/ Vice' — the Vice who conducts himself according to a set form. It was his Scene I] Notes 265 custom, no doubt, to ' moralize two meanings in one word.' It is to this * formal ' character that Hamlet alludes : — " ' A vice of kings — A cutpurse of the empire and the rule ; That from a shelf the precious diadem stole, And put it in his pocket ! ' " Formal seems rather to be = common, ordinary ; as in T.N. ii. 5. 128 : " evident to any formal capacity." 83. Moralize. "Comment upon, interpret" (Schmidt). Cf. R. of L. 103 : " Nor could she moralize his wanton sight." The one word is of course long in live long. 94. Lightly. "Commonly, in ordinary course " (Johnson). Cf. Jonson, Discoveries : " The great thieves of a state are lightly the officers of the crown ; " Puttenham, Arte of Poesie : " And ye shall find verses made all of monosillables, and do very well, but lightly they be jambickes," etc. This meaning of the word seems to grow out of its use = easily, readily ; as in C. of E. iv. 4. 5, Hen. V. ii. 2. 89, etc. 97. Dread. The reading of first and second quartos ; " dear " in the other early eds. White says : " That it is a mere misprint is shown by the remainder of York's speech, ' so must I call you now.'' He could have called him dear lord before their father's death; but as after that event his elder brother became his sovereign, he must call him ' dread lord,' which was a royal title." Cf. Hen. V. i. 2. 103, Ham. i. 2. 50, etc. Johnson remarks : " The original of this epithet applied to kings has been much disputed. In some of our old statutes the king is called Rex metuendissimus.'''' 99. Too late. " Too lately, the loss is too fresh in our memory " (Warburton). Ci. R. of L. \Zo\ : — " I did give that life Which she too early and too late hath spill'd." 106. Cousin. See on ii. 2. 8 above. 107. Beholding. Beholden. See on ii. i, 129 above. 266 Notes [Act III 121. / weigh it lightly. I hold it as a trifle, I prize it slightly. Hanmer's change to " I 'd " is very plausible. 130. Like an ape. " Little York hints at his uncle's deformity, which would afford a convenient projection for him to perch upon, as an ape sits on an ape-bearer's shoulders" (Clarke). For ape- bearer, cf. W. T. iv. 3. loi. Steevens quotes Ulpian Fulwel, Ars Adulandi : "thou hast an excellent back to carry my lord's ape." 132. Sharp-provided. Keen and ready ; or perhaps, as Clarke explains it, " shrewdly calculated, well devised to veil the person- ality of his scoff." Some have thought that provided was =: " fur- nished him beforehand," as if his mother had instigated him to mock his uncle. Cf. 151 below. 144. Clarence\ For the omission of the possessive inflection, cf. ii. I. 137 above. 152. Incensed. Instigated, incited. Cf. iii. 2. 29 below. 153. Scorn. Mock. Cf. i. 3. 109 above. 154. Parlous. See on ii. 4. 35 above. 155. Capable. Of good capabilities. 173. To sit about. To sit in council concerning. This line and the preceding are not in the quartos. 176. Icy-cold. The early eds. have "icie, cold." 1 79. Divided councils. " That is, a private consultation, separate from the known and public council " (Johnson). Cf. iii. 2. 20 below. See also the extract from Holinshed, p. 211 above. 182. Ancient. Old ; as often. Cf. 2 Hen. IV. ii. 4. 91, etc. 183. Are let blood. Ci. J. C. iii. I. 152 : " Who else must be let blood," etc. 185. Mistress Shore. After the death of Edward IV. Jane Shore became the mistress of Hastings. 190. Crosby House. See on i. 2. 214 above. 192. Complots. Both the noun and the verb are accented by S. on either syllable. For the noun, cf. 200 below ; and for the verb, see Rich. II. i. I. 96 and i. 3. 189, the only instances in which he uses it. Scene 11] Notes 267 193. Something we will determine. So the folio ; the quartos, *' chop off his head, man ; soxnezuhat we will do,''^ which reading is preferred by almost all editors. But determine, bring to an end, is much preferable to the more vague and commonplace " do." 195. The movables, etc. Cf. Rich. II. ii. i. 162 : — " The plate, coin, revenues, and movables Whereof our uncle Gaunt did stand possess'd ; " M. of V. iv. I. 389: "of all he dies possess'd" (see also Id. v. i. 293), etc. Scene II. — i. My lord! my lord I The quartos read "What, ho! my lord! " and in reply " Who knocks at the door?" and in the next hne " A messenger from the Lord Stanley." These varia- tions continue in the following lines. II. Rased. The term rase or rash is always used of the violence inflicted by a boar (Steevens). Cf. Warner, Albion'' s Engla?id : "Ha! cur, avant, the boar so rashe thy hide ; " Percy, Reliques : " Like unto wild boares rashing," etc. It seems to have been an old hunting term. See p. 215 above. For the allusion in boar, see on i. 3. 228 above. 25. Instance. Cause, ground. Cf. A. W. iv. i. 44: "What 's the instance ? " 27. To trust. That is, as to trust. See on ii. i. 120 above. 40. Garland. Cf. 2 Hen. IV. iv. 5. 202: "So thou the garland wear'st ; " Id. v. 2. 84 : " Be you contented, wearing now the gar- land," etc. 47. Upon his party. Upon his side ; as in iv. 4. 524 below. 52. Still. Always. See on ii. i. 138 above. 55. To the death. Though death were the consequence. Cf. Z. L. L. V. 2. 146 : " No, to the death, we will not move a foot," etc. 58, 59. 772,?/ . . . their. For the redundant pronoun, see on iii. I. 10 above. 70. For they account, etc. That is, they count upon having his head taken off and set high on London Bridge. 268 Notes [Act m 75. The holy rood. The holy cross; ofcen thus used in oaths. Cf. iv. 4. 166 below. 76. Several. Separate. Cf. Temp. iii. i. 42 : — " for several virtues Have I lik'd several women ; never any With so full soul but some defect in her Did quarrel with the noblest grace she owed, And put it to the foil," etc. 77. As yours. The folio reading ; equivalent to that of the quartos, " as you do yours." The ellipsis is not more peculiar than many others in S. 86. Misdoubt. Mistrust; as in Tl/. ^. ii. i. 192, etc. 88. The day is spent. The folio reading ; but it is obviously inconsistent with the opening of the scene, which makes the time four o'clock in the morning. The first quarto gives 91-93 thus: — " But come my Lo : shall we to the tower? Hast. I go : but stay, heare you not the newes, This day those men you talkt of, are beheaded." 89. Have with you. Take me with you, I '11 go with you. Cf. M. W.\\. \. \^\, 229, 239, iii. 2. 93, etc. Wot you what? Do you know? What do you think ? Cf. Hen. VIII. iii. 2. 122: "and wot you what I found?" See on ii. 3. 18 above. 91. Truth. Honesty, integrity ; as often. 92. Their hats. Some explain this as = " their dignities ; " but it is probably used quibblingly for " their heads," as Schmidt gives it. 94. Enter a Pursuivant. A pursuivant was a state messenger or herald. Cf. I Hen. VI. ii. 5.5:" And these grey locks, the pursuivants of death" (that is, heralds or forerunners), etc. See also v. 3. 59 below. 96. That your lordship please. That it should please your lord- ship. See on ii. 2. 129 above. Scene III J Notes 269 105. Gramercy. Great thanks (Fr. ^raw^w^ra). Qi.M.ofV. ii, 2. 128, etc. 108. Sir John. The title Sir was formerly applied to priests and curates in general. Nares explains the usage thus : " Doniinus, the academical title of a bachelor of arts, was usually rendered by Sir in Enghsh at the universities; therefore, as most clerical per- sons had taken that first degree, it became usual to style them ^zr." Latimer speaks of " a Sir John, who hath better skill in playing at tables, or in keeping a garden, then in God's word." It was regu- larly coupled with the Christian name, as here. 109. Exercise. Performance of religious duties ; as in iii. 7. 63 below. no. Content. Pay. Cf. 0th. iii. i. i: "I will content your pains." 113. Shriving work. Confession. Cf. Ham. v, 2. 47: "Not shriving time allowed," etc. So shrift in iii. 4. 94 below. Scene III. — i. In the quartos the scene begins with a speech by Ratcliff, " Come, bring forth the prisoners." 4. God bless the prince, etc. Walpole remarks : " Queen Eliza- beth Grey is deservedly pitied for the loss of her two sons; but the royalty of their birth has so engrossed the attention of historians that they never reckon into the number of her misfortunes the murder of this her second son, Sir Richard Grey, It is remarkable how shghtly the death of Earl Rivers is always mentioned, though a man invested with such high offices of trust and dignity ; and how much we dwell on the execution of the lord chamberlain Hast- ings, a man in every light his inferior. In truth, the generality draw their ideas of English story from the tragic rather than the historic authors." 8. O Pomfret, Pomfret ! That is, Pontefract Castle, at the town of the same name in the West Riding of Yorkshire, about twenty- two miles from York. Pomfret is the common pronunciation of the name. This famous castle, the ruins of which still give some idea, 270 Notes [Act III of its ancient strength and magnificence, was built about 1080 by Hildebert (or Ilbert) de Lacy, one of the followers of William the Conqueror. In 13 10 it came into the possession of Thomas, Earl of Lancaster, who was beheaded near the castle for a revolt against Edward I., several lords implicated with him being hanged at Pon- tefract the same day. In 1399 it was the prison of Richard II., and here, according to the account that Shakespeare follows, he was mur- dered by Sir Pierce of Exton. The castle was four times besieged : in 1536, by Robert Aske, captain-general of the Pilgrimage of Grace, to whom it surrendered; and thrice in the time of Charles I. In 1649 it was dismantled by order of Parliament. The chief remnant of the castle now is a portion of the keep, consisting of the ruins of two massive round towers connected by walls. In one of these walls, which is eighteen feet thick, is a wretched dungeon, in which tradition says Richard was confined, but it is more probable that he occupied one of the large apartments of the keep. 10. Closure. Enclosure. Cf. V. and A. 782: ''Into the quiet closure of my breast; " and Sonn. 48. 11 : "Within the gentle closure of my breast." It is = end in T. A. v. 3. 134 : " And make a mutual closure of our house." 15. When she exclaim'' d, etc. This line is found only in the folios. Cf. Af. ofV. iii. 2. 321 : "between you and I," etc. For exclaim on (^= cry out against), cf. V. and A. 930: "And sighing it again, exclaims on Death; " R. of L. 741 : "She stays, exclaim- ing on the direful night;" M. of V. iii. 2. 176: "to exclaim on you," etc. 23. Expiate. Brought to a close, finished. Cf. Sonn. 22. 4: " Then look I death my days should expiate." S. uses expiate only in these two passages. Clarke remarks : " As expiate is now used to express ' to annul by atonement, to cancel by reparation, to blot out by making redress,' so we think the word is here used for ' an- nulled, cancelled, ended.' " It seems to me not unlikely that S., using a word with which he was not familiar, confounded its Latin origin; as when he used important and importaticy for i}?iportunate Scene IV] Notes 271 and importunity . Expiation (a word he does not use) differs only by a letter from Expiration (which he uses three times). Singer proposed expirate here. Scene IV. — 4. Is all things ready, etc. The folio reading. The quartos have "Are all things fitting," etc.; but in the reply " It is," like the folios. Cf. 2 Hen. VI. iii. 2. ii : "Is all things well ? " 0th. i. I. 172: "Is there not charms?" etc. 5. Wants but nomination. The only thing wanting is the ap- pointment of the day. 8. Inward with. Intimate with, in the confidence of. Cf. Z. I. I. V. I. 102: "for what is inward between us, let it pass" (that is, what is confidential), etc. 26. Cue. A metaphor taken from the theatre ; as in Hen. V. iii. 6. 130 and 0th. i. 2. 83. For the literal sense, see AI. N. D. iii. i. 78, 102, iv. I. 205, V. I. 186, and M. W. iii. 3. 39. 31. My lord of Ely. Dr. John Morton, of Baliol College, Ox- ford, Prebendary of Salisbury, Lincoln, St. Paul's, and York, who was elected to the see of Ely in 1478, on the death of William Grey. He became Master of the Rolls, Lord Chancellor, Archbishop of Canterbury, and a Cardinal. The marriage of the Earl of Rich- mond with Elizabeth of York, which put an end to the long contest between the houses of York and Lancaster, was, according to Sir Thomas More, of his contriving. In Holborn. The palace of the Bishop of Ely was in Holborn, London, and Ely Chapel, recently restored, remains to mark the place. 32. I saw good strawberries, t.\.c. See p. 213 above. The cir- cumstance is also used by Dr. Legge in his Latin tragedy (see p. 17 above). 45. Prolong' d. Postponed, put off ; as in Much Ado, iv. i. 256 : — " this wedding day Perhaps is but prolong'd; have patience and endure." 272 Notes [Act III 48. Cheerfully and smooth. See on i. i. 22 above. 49. Likes. Pleases. Ci. Ham. v. 2. 2'j6: " This likes me well," etc. 55. Livelihood. Liveliness, vivacity, animation. Cf. V. and A. 26 : "The precedent of pith and livelihood ; " and A. IV. i. i. 58 : " the tyranny of her sorrows takes all livelihood from her cheek." These are the only instances of the word in S, Here the quartos have " likelihood," which many editors retain, making it = sem- blance, appearance. Mr. W. N. Lettsom says that " livelihood scarcely accords with 'love or hate' above;" but it accords per- fectly with looks cheerfully and smooth and stich spirit. The main point in what Hastings says is that something seems to please Gloster ; the added remark that no man can lesser hide his feel- ings, whether of love or hate, being secondary or incidental. It is true that S. elsewhere uses likelihood in the sense of sign or indi- cation (as in All's Well. i. 3. 128: " many likelihoods informed me of this before," etc. ), but here livelihood setvas, to me the more expressive word. 57. For were he, etc. After this line, the quartos insert the speech '' Dar. I pray God he be not, I say." It is retained by some of the editors. 58. L pray you all, etc. See p. 213 above. 77. Lovel and Ratcliff. The names are found only in the folio. As Ratcliff, according to the preceding scene, which is on the same day, was at Pomfret, he could not be present here. Theobald therefore changed Ratcliff to " Catesby " ; but in the next scene, while he makes Lovel and Catesby bring in the head of Hastings, he allows Gloster, just before their entrance, to say " Catesby, o'erlook the walls." Knight remarks : " This is one of those positions in which the poet has trusted to the imagination of his audience rather than to their topographical knowledge." 80. Fond. Foolish. CL fondly, m.. "]. 146 below. 2)2). Foot-cloth horse. A horse with a foot-cloth, or housings. Cf. 2 Hen. VI. iv. 7. 51 : — Scene V] Notes 273 " Cade. Thou dost ride in a foot-cloth, dost thou not? Say. What of that ? Cade. Marry, thou oughtest not to let thy horse wear a cloak when honester men than thou go in their hose and doublets." On stumbling as a bad omen, of. R. and J. v. 3. 121 and 3 Hen. VI. iv. 7. ir. The idea is very ancient. Cicero mentions it in his De Divinatione. Melton, in his Astrologaster, 1620, says that *' if a man stumbles in a morning as soon as he comes out of dores, it is a signe of ill lucke." Bishop Hall, in his Characters, says of the " Superstitious Man " that " if he stumbled at the threshold, he feares a mischief." Stumbling at graves (as in R. and J.^ is alluded to in Whimzies, or a New Cast of Characters, 1631 : "His earth- reverting body (according to his mind) is to be buried in some cell, roach, or vault, and in no open space, lest passengers (belike) might stumble on his grave." 88. Triumphing. Usually accented, as here, on the second syllable. 92. Is lighted. Has descended. Cf. J. C. v. 3. 32 : " Now^ some light," etc. In Per. iv. 2. 77, the participle is light. 94. Shrift. Confession; as in R. and J. i. I. 165 : "To hear true shrift," etc. 103. FearfulVst. Such contracted superlatives are common in S. Cf. V. 3. 197, 198 below. Scene V. — Enter Gloster and Buckingham, in rotten ar- mour, etc. This is according to the stage-direction in the folio, which reads : " Enter Richard, and Buckingham, in rotten Ar- mour, maruellous illfauored.^'' The modern eds. generally change rotten to " rusty. ^'' See p. 217 above. 4. Distraught. Distracted ; used by S. only here and in R. and J. iv. 3. 49. Sly corrupts the word into bestraught in T. of S. ind. 2. 26. 5. Tz(tf I can, etc. Clarke remarks : "This conceit of Bucking- ham's in his own powers of acting and feigning comes with almost RICHARD III. — 18 274 Notes [Act III a comic effect as displayed to Richard's very self, and played upon by him with a demure affectation of belief in its existence, while turning it to his own purposes." See on ii. 2. 152 above. 8. Intending. Pretending. Cf. Much Ado, ii. 2. 35 : "intend a kind of zeal both to the Prince and Claudio." See also iii. 7. 44 below. 9. Enforced. Forced, counterfeited ; as iny. C. iv. 2. 21 : — " When love begins to sicken and decay, Ituseth an enforced ceremony." 24. The plainest harmless. Probably an instance of the omission of the superlative inflection with one of a pair of adjectives. Cf. M. for M. iv. 6. 13 : "The generous and gravest citizens ; " M. of V. iii. 2. 295 : "The best condition'd and unwearied spirit" (that is, most unwearied), etc. Cf. 32 below. 25. Christian. A trisyllable. 26. Book. That is, " table-book " ( W. T. iv. 4. 610 and Ham. ii. 2. 136), or note-book. Cf. Cor.y. 2. 15 : "The book of his good acts ; " and see Id. iii. I. 293, etc. 29. Apparent. Evident, manifest. See on ii. 2. 130 above. 30. Conversation. Intercourse ; as in Ham. iii. 2. 60, Cymb. i. 4. 113, etc. 31. Attainder. Taint, stain. Cf. Rich. II. iv. I. 24: "the attainder of his slanderous lips," etc. Suspect = suspicion ; as in i. 3. 89 above. 34. Almost. Hardly, even. Cf. K. John, iv. 3. 43 : " Or do you almost think, although you see," etc. 43. Extreme. The adjective is accented by S. on the first sylla- ble, except in Sonn. 129. 4, lo. Elsewhere it generally comes be- fore a noun. 45. Enforc'd Forced, constrained. Cf. 9 above. 46. Fair befall you ! Cf. i. 3. 282 above. 62. As well as I. That is, as well as if I, etc. ; a common ellipsis. Cf. Macb. i. 4. 1 1 : " As 't were a careless trifle," etc. Scene V] Notes 275 68. Too late of^^ too late for. 71. Go, after, after. Not "Go after, after;" as sometimes pointed. The after is itself an imperative = follow. Cf. Rich. I J. V. 2. Ill : "After, Aumerle ; '■ Ham. iv. 2, t^}^ : " and all after," etc. 72. In all post. In all haste, or post-haste. Cf. R. and J. v. 3. 273 : "in post ; " R. of L. i : " all in post," etc. 73. Meetest. Most fitting or convenient. The early quartos have " meet'st advantage." See on iii. 4. 103 above. 74. Infer. Bring in, allege ; as in iii. 7. 12, 32, iv. 4. 345, v. 3. 315 belovv^. See also T. of A. iii. 5. 73 : — " 'tis inferr'd to us His days are foul and his drink dangerous." 75. A citizeti. "This person was one Walker, a substantial citizen and grocer at the Crown in Cheapside " (Grey). These accusations against Edward were all contained in the petition presented to Richard before his accession, and were afterwards embodied in an act of Parliament. 79. Luxury. Lasciviousness, lust ; the only meaning in S. Cf. Hen. V. iii. 5. 6, M. W. v. 5. 98, etc. 80. Change. Changing humour, capriciousness. Cf. Cymb. ii. 5. 25 : "change of prides," etc. 92. Sparingly. Cf. Hen. V. i. 2. 239 : — " Or shall we sparingly show you far off The Dauphin's meaning and our embassy ? " 97. BaynarcVs Castle. This old feudal mansion, " so called of Baynard, a nobleman that came in with William the Conqueror," stood on the Thames, a little below the present Blackfriars Bridge and just above St. Paul's Pier, where Castle Baynard Dock now is. Maiid Fitzwalter, to whom King John paid his unwelcome addresses, was a daughter of " the Lord of Castle Baynard." Humphrey Duke of Gloucester built a palace on the site of the original Castle Bay- nard, and this is the building referred to by S. Lady Jane Grey was here proclaimed queen in 1553 ; and Anne Clifford, Countess of 276 Notes [Act III Dorset, and later of Pembroke, afterwards lived here while her husband was residing at the Cockpit in Whitehall. The mansion was destroyed in the Great Fire of 1666. Steevens and some recent editors say incorrectly that it was " pulled down," and they seem to suppose that it was the original " castle " of the Conqueror's time which was occupied by Richard. 102-104. These lines are not in the quartos. Doctor Shaw was brother to the Lord Mayor, Edmund Shaw ; and Friar Penker was a provincial of the Augustine Friars. Both were popular preachers and were employed by Richard to support his claim to the crown. 105. To take some privy order. For take order = give orders, cf. iv. 2. 52 below. 106. The brats of Clarejtce. These were Edward Earl of War- wick, who was beheaded by Henry VII. in 1499, and Margaret, afterwards the wife of Sir Richard Pole, the last princess of the House of Lancaster. She was put to death at the age of seventy by Henry VIH. in 1540 (Malone). 107. Majzner person. The reading of the third and fourth quartos and the folios ; the other quartos have " manner of person." Manner person was an idiom not entirely obsolete in the time of S. It occurs once in the Bible of 161 1 {^Revelation, xviii. 12). Scene VI. — Enter a scrivener. A scrivener was a professional scribe, or writer of legal documents. Cf. T. of S. iv. 4. 59 : " My boy shall fetch the scrivener presently " (that is, to write the mar- riage contract). There is hardly a line of this speech in which the quarto and folio readings do not differ; but the variations are not worth recording, except perhaps "blind" for the folio bold in 12. 3. In PauVs. That is, in Old St. Paul's Cathedral. Cf. i. 2. 30 above. 7. Precedent.- The first draft, from which this copy was engrossed. 9. Untainted. Unaccused ; not attainted, or charged with trea- son. Scene VII] Notes 277 10. A good world the zvhile! See on ii. 3. 8 above. Gross = dull, stupid ; as in IV. T. i. 2. 301, etc. 14. In thought. " That is, in silence, without notice or detec- tion " (Johnson). Who so bold but says, etc. = who has the cour- age to say that he does see it ? Scene VII. — 5. Contract. The noun is accented by S. on either syllable, the verb only on the second. Lady Lucy was Elizabeth Lucy, the daughter of one Wyat, and the wife of one Lucy, who had been a mistress of the king before his marriage. In order to prevent this marriage, his mother alleged that there was a contract between him and dame Lucy; but on being sworn to speak the truth she declared that the king had not been affianced to her, though she admitted his intimacy with her (Malone). 8. Enforcement. Violation, rape; as in R. of L. 1623: "by foul enforcement." 12. Infer, See on iii. 5. 74 above. 13. Idea. Image ; as in Much Ado, iv. i. 226 and L. L. L. iv. 2. 69, the only other instances of the word in S. 25. Statuas. The word is " statues " in all the early eds.; but as the Latin form of the word was in use in the poet's time, the majority of the editors adopt it here, as iny. C. ii. 2. 76, iii. 2. 192, etc. Breathing is the reading of the first and second quartos and the folios ; the other quartos have " breathlesse "; but the meaning ob- viously is, they were silent as statues, though they had breath and might have spoken (Malone). 30. Recorder. According to Walker, the accent is on the first syllable, which is barely possible. Pope's change of but to " ex- cept" would improve the metre better. 37. Fi'}f'. "that Belarius whom you sometime banish'd," etc. On the passage, cf. i. 3. 174 fol. above. See also 3 Hen. VI. i. 4. 79 fol. 290-344. Say . . . years ? This is the longest of the passages found in the folios, but not in the quartos. 299. Quicken. Give life to; as in Temp. iii. I. 6: "quickens what 's dead," etc. Cf. the play on quick in 363 below, and see also on i. 2. 65 above. 304. Mettle. The first and second folios have "mettall," the third " mettle," the fourth " metal." The early eds. use metal and mettle without regard to the meaning. 306. Bid: Bore, endured ; the past tense of bide. Cf. T, N. ii. 4- 97 : — " There is no woman's sides Can bide the beating of so strong a passion," etc. 313. Fear fid. Full of fear. See on i. i. 11 above. 324. Orient pearl. Cf. M. N. D. iv. I. 59, A. and C. i. 5. 41, V. and A. 981, and P. P. 133. 325. Advantaging. Increasing. For the verb, cf. Temp. i. i. 34, T. N. iv. 2. 119,/. C. iii. i. 242, etc. 338. Victress. The only instance of the word in S. 339. Were I best? Would it be best for me? See on i. i. 100 above. 345. Infer. See on iii. 5. 74 above. 346. Still-lasting. Everlasting. See on 230 above. 296 Notes [Act IV 348. Which the king's King forbids. Alluding to Leviticus, xviii. 14. 356. Likes of it. Likes it. Cf. Much Ado, v, 4. 59 : " I am your husband, if you like of me," etc. 357. Her subject low. The folio reading. The quartos have " love " for low, and some eds. follow them. Others change low to " now." 363. Quick. Hasty. In her reply the queen plays on the other sense of quick = living. Cf. the quibble in L. L. L. v. 2. 687. 368. My George. The medallion with the figure of St. George on horseback, which was part of the insignia of the Knights of the Garter ; but not until the reign of Henry VH. Cf. 2 Hen. VI. iv. I. 29 : " Look on my George ; I am a gentleman." 371. His. Its ; as in the two following lines. 380-389. If thoti hadst feared, etc. This passage is evidently corrupt in both the folio and the quarto texts, which I give below, indicating by italics the words in which they differ. The folio reads : — " If thou didd'stfeare to breake an Oath with him, The vnity the King my husband made, Thou hadst not broken, nor my Brothers died. If thou had'st fear'd to breake an oath by him, Th' Imperiall mettall, circling now thy head, Had grac'd the tender temples of my Child, And both the Princes had bene breathing heere. Which now two tender Bed-ieWovfes for dust, Thy broken Faith hath made the prey for Wormes. What can'st thou sweare by ?iow." The quarto reads thus : — " If thou hadst feard to breake an oath by him, The vnitie the king my brother made, Had not beene broken, nor my brother slaine. If thou hadst feard to breake an oath by him The emperiall mettel circling now thy brow, Scene IV] Notes 297 Had grast the tender temples of my childe, And both the princes had beene breathing here, Which now two tender //ay-fellowes /or dust, Thy broken laith hath made a praye for wormes." 392. Hereafter. Used adjectively ; as in i Hen. VI. ii. 2. 10: " hereafter ages." 394. Ungovern'd. That is, left with no one to govern or guide them. 404. Opposite. Opposed, adverse; as in 216 above. S. men- tions planets nearly a score of times, but always with an astro- logical reference. Cf. Much Ado, v. 2. 41, W. T. i. 2. 201, ii. i. 105, Ham. i. i. 162, Otk. ii. 3. 182, etc. 407. Tender. Regard, hold dear. See on ii. 4. 72 above. 419. Peevish found. See on i. 3. 194 and iii. i. 31 above. 426. Shortly. Perhaps a trisyllable, as Malone and Abbott make it. See p. 203, 5 (^c) above. 429. Shallow, changing woman. " Such was the real character of this queen dowager, who would have married her daughter to King Richard, and did all in her power to alienate the Marquis of Dorset, her son, from the Earl of Richmond " (Steevens). But see p. 32 above. 432. Puissant. Always a dissyllable in S. Puissance is some- times a trisyllable. 436. Hull. Float, or, in nautical phrase, "lie to." Cf. T. N. i. 5. 217 and Hen. VIII. ii. 4. 199. 441. Convenient. Suitable, befitting. Cf. lear, iv. 5. 31 : — " And more convenient is he for my hand Than for your lady's," etc. 448. Strength. For strength — force, army, see 2 Hen. IV. i. 3. 76 ; and for power in the same sense. Id. iv. 4. 5. Cf. also iv. 3. 50 above, and 531 and v. 3. 26 below. 454. My mind is changed. " Richard's precipitation and con- fusion is in this scene very happily represented by inconsistent orders, and sudden variations of opinion" (Johnson). 298 Notes [Act IV 457. Heyday, The early eds. have " Hoyday ; " as in T. and C V. I. 73 (where, however, the quarto has " Heyday ") and T. of A. i. 2. 137. 458. What. Why; as often before need. Cf. R. of L. 31: "What needeth then apologies be made?" Cymb. iii. 4. 34: " What shall I need to draw my sword? " etc. 462. White-liver'' d runagate ! Cowardly vagabond ! Y ox white- livered, cf. Hen. V. iii. 2. 34. See also M. of V. iii. 2. 86 : " livers white as milk." Some editors join the words to what follows instead of what precedes. 467. Chair. Throne ; as in v. 3. 252 below. 469. What heir of York, etc. There were other heirs who had a better title than Richard, as Malone remarked — Elizabeth and the other daughters of Edward IV., and Edward, son of Richard's elder brother, the Duke of Clarence ; and although, as Ritson rejoined, Edward's issue had been pronounced iUegitimate, and Clarence attainted of high treason, yet this was unjustly done by procurement of Richard himself. 471. Makes. Does. See on i. 3. 164 above. 474. You cannot guess, etc. I make this a question, as White does. If a period be put at the end of the line, as in the early eds. and most of the modern ones, the sentence must be supposed to be ironical. The Welshman is a contemptuous reference to Richmond's Welsh descent. He was the son of Edmund Tudor (created by his half-brother, Henry VI., in 1452, Earl of Rich- mond), who married Margaret Beaufort, heiress of the Dukes of Somerset. Edmund Tudor was the son of Queen Katherine, widow of Henry V., by her second husband,' Owen Tudor, a Welsh gentleman. 485. Pleaseth. If it pleaseth. The quartos have " Please it." 497. Advertised. Informed. The accent in S. is regularly on the second syllable, and so with advertisement. Cf. T. and C. ii. 2. 212: "I was advertis'd their great general slept," etc. 499. Brother. He was cousin, not brother, to Sir Edward, Scene V] Notes 299 500. Moe. More ; used regularly only in the plural. In Te?np. V. I. 234: "moe diversity of sounds," the expression is virtually plural. 502. Competitors. Confederates, associates. S. generally uses the word in the sense of rivals. 507-511. The neivs . . . whither. The quartos read : — " Mes. Your grace mistakes, the newes I bring is good My news is that by sudden floud, and fall of water, The Duke of Buckinghams armie is disperst and scattered, And he himself fled, no man knowes whether. King. O I crie you mercie, I did mistake. Ratcliffe reward him, for the blow I gaue him." 511. Cry thee mercy. See on i. 3. 235 above. 513. Well-advised. See on i. 3. 318 above. 524. Upon his party. See on iii. 2. 47 above. 525. Hois' d. The past tense oi hoise. Cf. 2 Hen. VL'\. i. 169: "We'll quickly hoise Duke Humphrey from his seat." The word here is spelt " hoist " in the quartos and " hoys'd " in the folios. 532. Colder. More unwelcome. Cf. 2 Hen. VI. i. I. 237 : " Cold news for me," etc. News is plural here, as they shows; but it h singular just above, as often. 533. Reason. Talk. See on i. 4. 160 above. 535, Take order. See on iv. 2. 52 above. ' Scene V. — i. Sir Christopher. This Urswick was a priest, and chaplain to the Countess of Richmond. He was afterwards almoner to Henry VII., and was offered the bishopric of Norwich, which he refused, and retired to Hackney, where he died in 1521. His monument is still to be seen in the church at Hackney. For Sir as a priestly title, see on iii. 2. 108 above. 3. Frank' d up in hold. Stied up in confinement. See on i. 3. 314 above. 14. Redoubted. Redoubtable, dread ; as in Rich. II. iii. 3. 198, Hen. V. ii. 4. 14, etc. 300 Notes [Act V 15. Rice ap Thomas. The ap is Welsh = of, and in personal names = son of. 1 7. Bend their power. Lead their forces. See on iv. 4. 448 above. 20. Resolve. Inform. See on iv. 2. 26 above. ACT V Scene I. — Salisbury. The locality is not indicated in the early eds., but, according to Hall, the execution of Buckingham was at Salisbury. 1. Will not King Richard, etc. Steevens remarks : " The reason why Buckingham solicited an interview with the king is explained in Hen. VI H. i. 2. 194 : — " ' I would have play'd The part my father meant to act upon The usurper Richard ; who, being at Salisbury, Made suit to come in 's presence; which, if granted, As he made semblance of his duty, would Have put his knife into him.' " Hall and Holinshed also hint that this was his purpose. 2. Patient. A trisyllable. See on i. 3. 157 above. 10. All- Souls' day. November 2d. For doomsday in 12 = day of death, cf. R. and J. v. 3. 234: " their stolen marriage day Was Tybalt's doomsday." 19. The determin'd respite of my wrongs. The limit of the respite allowed me before being punished for the wrongs I have done. Cf. i Hen. VI. iv. 6. 9 : " To my determin'd time thou gav'st new date;" that is, extended the time that had reached its limit. 20. Which. Whom; as in the Lord's Prayer. Scenes II, III] Notes 301 24. In. Into. See on i. 2. 261 above. 26. Whejt he, etc. Cf. i. 3. 300 above. Scene II. — Oxford, who enters with Richmond, was John de Vere, Earl of Oxford, a zealous Lancastrian, who after a long con- finement in Hames Castle, Picardy, escaped thence in 1484, and joined the Earl of Richmond at Paris. He commanded the arch- ers at the battle of Bosworth. Sir Jaines Blunt had been captain of the castle of tiames, and assisted Oxford to escape (Malone). 3. The bowels of the land. Boswell remarks that this was once a common metaphor. He cites an instance of it from the Law Reports : " The plaintiff declared that he was possessed of a colliery . . . lying in the bowels of such a close." 7. Wretched. Hateful, abominable. Cf. R. of L. 999 : " Such wretched hands such wretched blood should spill" (where both hands and blood 2X& Tarquin's). 13. Tamworth. " Tamworth tower and town" {Alarmion, I. 11) are on the borders of Staffordshire and Warwickshire, about twenty miles due west of Leicester. The castle was founded by Robert de Marmion, a follower of the Conqueror, but was after- wards rebuilt on a higher site. It is still in good condition, and belongs to Marquis Townshend. See cut on p. 176 above. 21. Dearest. Most urgent. See on i. 4. 210 above. Scene III. — 11. Battalia. The quartos have " battalion." The only other instance of either form in S, is in Haju. iv. 5. 79: " But in battalions." Battalia is not the plural of battalion, but an old noun singular. " Richmond's forces are said to have been only five thousand; and Richard's army consisted of about twelve thousand men. But Lord Stanley lay at a small distance with three thousand men, and Richard may be supposed to have reckoned on them as his friends, though the event proved otherwise " (Malone). 19. Enter, on the other side of the field, Richmond, etc. "It should be remembered that the field was represented by a platform 302 Notes [Act V about as large as the floor of a drawing-room in a modern full- sized house. The representatives of Richard and Richmond were actually within easy conversational distance of each other, and could almost have shaken hands ; and the tents, of course, occupied the same relative positions. Such were the arrangements of our primitive stage. We now, by the aid of scene-painters and carpen- ters, and at the sound of the prompter's whistle, separate the rep- resentatives of York and Lancaster by certain yards of coloured canvas, and our stage ghosts address themselves to Richard only ; and there are those who, forgetting that the stage does not, never can, and should not if it could, represent the facts of real life, think that we have gained greatly by the change" (White). Sir William Brandon, who bore Richmond's standard, was father to Charles Brandon, Duke of Suffolk, who married Mary, the sister of Henry VIII. and the widow of Louis XII. of France. 24. Model. Outline, plan. Cf. Much Ado, i. 3. 48: "Any model to build mischief on," etc. 25. Limit. Appoint, assign. For several = separate, see on iii. 2. 76 above. 29. Keeps. Remains with. Regiment was used in Shakespeare's time to mean any considerable body of men, under the regiment or command of one leader, without reference to the number of troops that composed it. 48. Nine. The quartos have " six," which many editors retain. Verplanck observes: "This is on the authority of Steevens, who remarks that 'a supper at as late an hour as nine o'clock, in 1485, would have been a prodigy.' We know very well what the supper- hour of the higher classes at that period was. Harrison tells us (Preface to Holinshed), 'the nobilitie, gentrie, and students ordi- narily go to dinner at eleven before noon, and to supper at five, or between five and six, at afternoone.' From this reason, I do not doubt that the poet wrote originally ' six o'clock.' But, on revision, he saw that that hour would not agree with the context. The Earls of Pembroke and Surrey are said to have before gone through the Scene III] Notes 303 army at ' cock-shut time,' or twilight, which in August, in that part of England (the battle of Bosworth Field was on August 22, 1485), when the sunset is after seven, would be much later than the time assigned for this scene. Besides, in the preceding scene, ' the weary sun' had already 'made a golden set'; and this scene, therefore, is long after six. It seems then that the poet, perceiving that the whole conduct of this scene required a later hour, and wishing to preserve the incident of Richard's refusal to sup, altered the time to what — though not the common supper hour of domes- tic life — might well be that of an army, which had just encamped, after a march. The insertion of six confuses the time of all this act." 50. Beaver. Here apparently = helmet ; as in I Hen. IV. iv. I. 104: "with his beaver on." It was properly the visor of the helmet ; as in Ham. i. 2. 230 : " he wore his beaver up," etc. 58. Catesby ! This is the reading of the quartos, though, by a misprint, they assign the reply to " /v'a/." instead of " Gz/." The folios have " Ratcliff e," and give the reply to him ; but it is evident from what follows that it is Catesby who is despatched to send the pursuivant to Stanley, and that Ratcliff remains behind. 63. Watch. The watch-light or watch-candle (Johnson and Schmidt). The king would not use the word give, if he meant a guard ; and the order for the guard is given in 77 below. 64. White Surrey. According to Hall and Holinshed, the king was " mounted on a great white courser." 65. Staves. The staff v^dis the shaft of the lance, here put for the lance itself, as in 341 below. Cf. K. John, ii. i. 318, Macb. v. 3. 48, etc. 68. Melancholy. " Richard calls him melancholy because he did not join heartily in his cause" (Malone). That may have been the cause of his melancholy, but it is doubtful whether Richard refers to it as such. He may simply have noticed the result. 70. Cock-shut tivie. Twilight. A cock-shut was a kind of net used for catching woodcocks, and was generally set in the dusk of the evening. Steevens quotes Arden of Fever sham, 1592: "In the 304 Notes [Act V twilight, cock-shut light;" and The Widow, 1652: "a fine cock- shut evening." 72. So. See on iv. 4. 183 above. 73. I have 7iot, etc. See p. 34 above. 75. Is ink and paper ready? For the question and reply, cf. iii. 4. 4, 5 above. 77. Bid my guard watch. If this is not the order for the guard (see on 63 above), it is a message to the guard that would be set at the royal tent as a matter of course, admonishing them to be vigilant. 87. Flaky. Scattering like flakes. 91. Mortal-staring. "Having a deadly stare, grim-looking" (Schmidt). Cf. " grim-visag'd " in i. i. 9 above. It is far better than any of the " emendations " that have been proposed ; like " mortal-fearing," " mortal-scaring," " mortal-staving," " mortal- stabbing," " mortal-daring," etc. 93. With best advantage, etc. " I will take the best opportunity to elude the dangers of this conjuncture" (Johnson). 98. Leisure. That is, want of leisure. Cf. Rich. II. i, I. 5: " Which then our leisure would not let us hear." See also 239 below, 105. With troubled thoughts. The folios have " troubled with noise," which White prefers on the ground that S. had represented Richmond as " entirely untroubled in mind, and sure of victory from the time when he first appears upon the scene." But troubled thoughts need not imply anything more than being " careful and troubled about many things," as a general, however confident of victory, must be on the eve of a decisive battle. 106. Peize. Weigh. Cf. M. of V. iii. 2. 22 and K. John, ii. i. 575 ; the only other instances of the word in S. III. Bruising irons. Perhaps suggested by Psalms, ii. 9 (Prayer-Book version) : "Thou shalt bruise them with a rod of iron." For irons = wtdi^ons, cf. T. and C. ii. 3. 18: "drawing their massy irons," etc. Scene III] Notes 305 117. Windows. That is, the eyelids. Cf. A\ and J. iv. i. 100 : " thy eyes' windows Fall like death," etc. 125. My anointed body. Cf. Lear, iii. 7. 58: "his anointed flesh," etc. See also iv. 4. 151 above. 126. Punched. The word (which S. uses nowhere else) seems undignified now ; but Steevens cites Chapman, Iliad, vi. : " with a goad he punch'd each furious dame." 133. Fulsome. "Rich, cloyingly sweet" (Clarke), as malmsey is. Steevens says that S. "seems to have forgot himself," as Clarence was killed before being thrown into the malmsey-butt. But see i. 4. 269 above, which implies that the murderers trusted to the drowning to complete their work. 136. Fall. Let fall. See on i. 3. 353 above, and cf. iv. 2. 65. 157. Annoy. Cf. V. and A. ^(^^ : "death's annoy;" Jd. 599: "worse than Tantalus' is her annoy," etc. The word was then used in a stronger sense than now. 161. That never slept, etc. Cf. iv. I. 82 above. 174. I died for hope, etc. As far as hope was concerned ; or for want of hope. The passage has been much discussed, and sundry changes have been suggested. Dyce remarks : " However we are to understand it, the following passage, in Greene's James the Fourth, seems to determine that it is right : — " ' War will then cease when dead ones are reviv'd ; Some then will yield when I am dead for hope.' " 181. The lights btirn blue. According to ancient superstition, an indication of the presence of a ghost. Steevens quotes Lyly, Gala- thea, 1592 : " My mother would often tell me when the candle burnt blue, there was some ill spirit in the house." Cf. y. C. iv. 3. 273; " How ill this taper burns ! " (when the ghost of Caesar appears). 194. Several. Separate. See on 25 above. 197. Highest. For the contraction, see on iii. 4. 103 above. 211. Dofze salutation. Cf. _/. C. iv. 2. 5 : "To do you salutation from my master." RICHARD III. — 20 3o6 Notes [Act v 213-215, O RaUliff . . . my lord. These lines are omitted in the folios. 220. In proof. That is, in armour that has been proved, or tested. Cf. Macb. i. 2. 54 : " lapp'd in proof," etc. 222. Eavesdropper. Used by S. only here. 225. Cry mercy. " I cry you mercy." See on i. 3. 235 above. 229. Ifi. Into. See on i. 2. 261 above. 232. Cried on. Cried out, gave the cry of. Cf. Ha7n. v. 2. 375 : " cries on havoc ; " 0th. v. i. 48 : " cries on murther," etc. 239. Leisure. See on 98 above. 244. Richard except. The except may be either the preposition transposed, as Schmidt makes it, or the participle contracted, as Abbott believes. See on convict, i. 4. 187 above. 251. Foil. Alluding to the foil or leaf of metal placed behind a transparent gem to set it off. A poor or imperfect stone would of course gain most by such a background. Cf. Ha77i. v. 2. 266 : — " I '11 be your foil, Laertes ; in mine ignorance Your skill shall, like a star i' the darkest night, Stick fiery off indeed." See also Drayton, Heroic. Epist. : — " With a deceitful foil to lay a ground, To make a glass to seem a diamond." 255. Ward. Guard, protect. Cf. T. and C. i. 2. 292: "if I cannot ward what I would not have hit ; " and T. A. iii. i. 195 : — " Tell him it was a hand that warded him From thousand dangers." 260. In safeguard of. In defence of; as in 3 Hen. VI. ii. 2. 18: " And doves will peck in safeguard of their brood," etc. 263. Quit. Requite. See on iv. 4. 20 above. 266. The ransom, etc. " The fine paid by me in atonement for my rashness shall be my dead corse" (Johnson). Cf. Hen. V. iii. 6. 163 : " My ransom is this frail and worthless trunk." Scene III] Notes 307 268. The gain. For the redundant construction, cf. iii. I. lo and iii. 2. 58 above. 277. Tell tKe clock. "Count the clock" (/. C. ii. i. 192). Cf. J^emp. ii. I. 289: — " They '11 tell the clock to any business that We say befits the hour." 280. Braved. Made brave or bright. Cf. Sonn. 12. 2 : — " When I do count the clock that tells the time, And see the brave day sunk in hideous night," etc. For the verb, cf. the quibble in T. of S. iv. 3. 125, where Grumio says to the tailor : " F'ace not me : thou hast braved many men ; brave not me; I will neither be faced nor braved." 283. Will not be seen. Refuses to be seen. Cf. what Rich- mond has said in 19 fol. 289. Vaunts. Exults, makes a bold show. For the intransitive use, cf. Sonn. 15. 7 and i Hen. IV. v. 3. 43. 290. Bustle, bustle. Cf. i. I. 152 above. 293. My battle shall be ordered. My army shall be arranged. See on i. 3. 130 above. 294. Forezvard. Vanguard ; used by S. only here (cf. " the two forwards," p. 227 above). Van he has only in A. and C. iv. 6, 9, and vanguard not at all. For vaivard, his word elsewhere, see Hen. V. iv. 3. 130, Cor. i. 6. 53, etc. 300. Puissance. Often used in this concrete sense ; as in K. John, iii. i. 339: " go, draw our puissance together," etc. For the varying pronunciation of the word, see on iv. 4. 432 above. 301. Chief est. A common superlative in S. Cf. M. of V. ii. 8. 43, K.John, ii. I. 39, Cor. ii. 2. 88, v. 6. 150, Ham. i. 2. 117, etc. 302. This, and Saint George to boot ! " That is, this is the order of battle which promises success ; and over and above this is the protection of our patron saint" (Johnson). But perhaps to boot = to help. Cf. W. T. i. 2. 80 : " Grace to boot ! " which is evidently = God be gracious to us ! God help us ! 3o8 Notes [Act v 304. This found I, etc. See p. 228 above. 306. Dickon. Dick. It is the name of one of the characters in Gammer Gtirton's Needle, 1575- A spot on Bosworth Field is still known as " Dickon's Nook." For bought and sold ^^ betrayed, see K.John, V. 4. 10: "Fly, . . . you are bought and sold." Cf. C. of E. iii. I. 72, T. ajid C. ii. I. 51, etc. 313. Lei us to ^t pell-mell, etc. Cf. K. John, ii. i. 406 : — " Why then defy each other, and pell-mell Make work upon ourselves, for heaven or hell." 315. Inferr'd. See on iii. 5. 74 above. 317. Sort. Company. Cf. Rich. II. iv. i. 246: "a sort of traitors," etc. Runaways = Runagates, vagabonds. Cf. R. and J. iii. 2. 6, etc. 323. Restrain. "Withhold them from you and keep them to themselves" (Schmidt). Cf. Cor.y. 3. 167 : — " That thou restrain'st from me the duty which To a mother's part belongs ; " and T. of A. v. i. 151 : "restraining aid to Timon." 325. Mother'' s. S. here follows Holinshed, who gives by mistake "moothers" for "brothers." Hall, from whom Holinshed copied, gives it correctly (Farmer). Douce adds that in the ^r.y/ ed. of Holinshed the word is " brothers," showing that S. used the second ed., in which the error occurs. While Richmond was at the court of Bretagne, he was maintained by the Duke of Burgundy, brother- in-law to Richard. 326. Milk-sop. The Mirrour for Magistrates calls him "A weake Welch milksop" (Steevens). S. uses the word only here and in Much Ado, v. i. 91. 329. Overweening. Presumptuous. Cf. 2 Hen. IV. iii. I. 159, etc. 335. Bobfl. Drubbed; as in T. and C. ii. i. 76: "I have bobbed his brain more than he has beat my bones." Scene IVJ Notes 309 336. Record. For the accent, see on iii. i. 72 above. 341. Staves. Lances. See on 65 above. 343. Deny. Hefuse. See on iii. i. 35 above. 345. The marsh. There vi'as a large marsh in Bosv^^orth plain betvi^een the two armies, which Richmond passed, and arranged his forces so that it protected his right M'ing, Fie thus also compelled the enemy to fight with the sun in their faces, a great disadvantage when bow^s and arrows were in use (Malone). See p. 227 above. 350. Spleen. Fire, ardour. Cf. K. John, ii, i. 68: "With ladies' faces and fierce dragons' spleens," etc. Scene IV. — 2. Enacts. Performs; as in i Hen. VI. i. i. 122, iii. I. 116, etc. Than a man — than a mere man could. 3. Daring ail opposite. Daring to oppose himself. For opposite = opponent, see T.N. iii. 2. 68, iii. 4. 253, etc. 7. A horse! etc. See p. 15 above. 12. Five have I slain, etc. Cf i Hen. IV. v. 4. 25 fol. Verplanck remarks: "The poet had here more than mere dramatic effect to excuse his making the tyrant fall by Richmond's hand. It is stated by the chroniclers that Richard was determined to engage with Richmond, if possible, in single combat. For this purpose he rode furiously to that quarter of the field vi^here the earl vi'as ; attacked his standard-bearer (Sir William Brandon), and killed him ; then assaulted Sir John Cheny, whom he overthrew. Having thus cleared his way to his antagonist, he engaged in single combat with him, and probably would have been victorious ; but at that instant Sir William Stanley joined Richmond's army, and the royal forces fled with great precipitation. Richard was soon after- wards overpowered by numbers, and fell fighting bravely to the last moment." 14. And exeunt, fighting. The quartos, as well as the folio, have the direction, ^' they fight, Richard is slaine.'' But they, Richard and Richmond, must go out fighting, else Stanley could not after- wards enter with the latter (as he is directed to do in all the old 310 Notes [Actv editions), bearing the crown, and say: "Lo, here this long-usurped royalty . . . have I pluck' d off." i6. Acquit. Acquitted ; as in M. W. i. 3. 27 : "I am glad I am so acquit of this tinder-box." For the form, see on convict, i. 4. 187 above. 21. Say amen to all. Say so be it to all, grant that it may come to pass. 23. Leicester. Bosworth Field is fourteen miles from Leicester, where Richard spent the night before the battle. The old Blue Boar Inn at which he slept was torn down in 1836. 31. To' en the sacrament. Taken an oath. See on i. 4. 203 above. 38, 39. The f cither, etc. Cf. 3 Hen. VI. ii. 5. 55-122, where these things actually occur. 40. All this divided, etc. Some put a period after Lancaster; but the preceding lines give the consequence, not the cause, of the division. It must be admitted, however, that the repetition in the next line is awkward. The suggestion that line 41 belongs after 43 is plausible. 46. Smooth-fac^d. Here the word seems = fair or pleasing ; as in L.L.L.y. 2. 838. In the only other instance in S. (^K. John, ii. I. 573: "That smooth-fac'd gentleman, tickling Commodity") it is = hypocritical or deceitful. 48. Abate. Blunt (Schmidt). CL2 Hen. IV.'i.i.ii'j. Steevens made it = subdue ; as in Cor. iii. 3. 132: "most Abated captives." Dyce quotes the novel of Pericles, 1608: "Absence abates that edge that Presence whets." Cf. Florio's definition of spontare: "to abate the edge or point of any thing or weapon, to blunt, to unpoint." 49. Reduce. Bring back ; its etymological sense (Latin reduco). Cf. Hen. V. v. 2. 63 : " Which to reduce into our former favour," etc. S. uses the word nowhere else except in ii. 2. 68 above. APPENDIX " The True Tragedie of Richard the Third " • Collier gives the following interesting account of this old play: — "The piece, as a literary composition, deserves little remark; but as a drama it possesses several peculiar features. It is in some respects unlike any relic of the kind, and v^^as evidently vv^ritten several years before it came from Creede's press. It opens w^ith a singular dialogue between Truth and Poetry : — " ' Poetrie. Truth, well met. Truth. Thankes, Poetrie : what makes thou upon a stage ? Poet. Shadowes. Truth. Then, will I adde bodies to the shadowes. Therefore depart, and give Truth leave To show her pageant. Poet. Why, will Truth be a Player ? Truth. No ; but Tragedia like for to present A Tragedie in England done but late. That will revive the hearts of drooping mindes. Poet. Whereof? Truth. Marry, thus.' " Hence Truth proceeds with a sort of argument of the play ; but before the Induction begins, the ghost of George, Duke of Clarence, had passed over the stage, delivering two lines as he went, which we give precisely as in the original copy now before us : — " ' Cresse cruor sangumis , satietur sanguine cresse, Quod spero scitio. O scitio, scitio, vendicta / ' 3" 312 Appendix " The drama itself opens with a scene representing the death of Edward IV., and the whole story is thenceforward most inartificially and clumsily conducted, with a total disregard of dates, facts, and places, by characters imperfectly drawn and ill sustained. Shore's wife plays a conspicuous part ; and the tragedy does not finish with the battle of Bosworth Field, but is carried on subsequently, although the plot is clearly at an end. The conclusion is as re- markable as the commencement. After the death of Richard, Report (a personification like some of those in the old Moralities) enters, and holds a dialogue with a Page, to inform the audience of certain matters not exhibited ; and after a long scene between Richmond, the Queen-mother, Princess Elizabeth, etc., two Mes- sengers enter, and, mixing with the personages of the play, detail the succession of events and of monarchs from the death of Richard until the accession of Elizabeth. The Queen-mother then comes forward, and pronounces a panegyric upon Elizabeth, ending thus : — " ' For which, if ere her life be tane away, God grant her soule may live in heaven for aye ; For if her Graces dayes be brought to end, Your hope is gone on whom did peace depend.' "As in this epilogue no allusion is made to the Spanish Armada, though other public events of less prominence are touched upon, we may ihfer that the drama was written before 1588. " The style in which it is composed deserves observation ; it is partly in prose, partly in heavy blank-verse (such as was penned before Marlowe had introduced his improvements, and Shakespeare had adopted and advanced them), partly in ten-syllable rhyming couplets and stanzas, and partly in the long fourteen-syllable metre, which seems to have been popular even before prose was employed upon our stage. In every point of view it may be asserted that few more curious dramatic relics exist in our language. It is the most ancient printed specimen of composition for a public theatre of which the subject was derived from English history. Appendix 313 " Boswell asserts that the True Tragedy of Richard the Third hzd 'evidently been used and read by Shakespeare'; but we cannot trace any resemblances but such as were probably purely accidental and are merely trivial. Two persons could hardly take up the same period of our annals, as the groundwork of a drama, without some coincidences ; but there is no point, either in the conduct of the plot or in the language in which it is clothed, where our great dramatist does not show his measureless superiority. The portion of the story in which the two plays make the nearest approach to each other is just before the murder of the princes, where Richard strangely takes a page into his confidence respecting the fittest agent for the purpose. "In the Memoirs of Ediuard Alley n, it is shown that Henslowe's company, subsequent to 1599, was either in possession of a play upon the story of Richard III., or that some of the poets he em- ployed were engaged upon such a drama. From the sketch of five scenes, there inserted, we may judge that it was a distinct perform- ance from the True Tragedy of Richard the Third. By an entry in Henslowe's Diary, dated 22d June, 1602, we learn that Ben Jonson received 10/. in earnest of a play called Richard Crook- back, and for certain additions he was to make to Kyd's Spanish Tragedy. Considering the success of Shakespeare's Richard III., and the active contention, at certain periods, between the company to which Shakespeare belonged and that under the management of Henslowe, it may be looked upon as singular that the latter should have been without a drama on that portion of English history until after 1599: and it is certainly not less singular that as late as 1602 Ben Jonson should have been occupied in writing a new play upon the subject. Possibly about that date Shakespeare's Richard /// had been revived with the additions ; and hence the employment of Jonson on a rival drama, and the publication of the third edition of Shakespeare's tragedy after an interval of four years." Verplanck, after quoting the above, remarks : " It may be added that, as the unhorsing of Richard is contrary to the old historical 314 Appendix account, his well-known cry on his last battle-field, so popular on the stage, and which has been re-echoed by succeeding dramatists — * A horse ! a horse ! my kingdom for a horse ! ' — is to be traced to this rude old play, where it is thus given : — " ' The Battle enters, Richard wounded with his Page. "King. A horse, a horse, a fresh horse! Page. Ah ! fiy, my lord, and save your life. King. Fiy, villain ! Look I as though I would fly? — No ! first shall," etc. "Possibly, too, the substitution of the ghost-scene, in place of Richard's dream of devils, related by Hall, might have been sug- gested by one of the lines in Richard's last speech before the battle, in the old play; and as this is the most elaborated speech it con- tains, it is here extracted : — " ' King. The hell of life that hangs upon the crown, The daily cares, the nightly dreams. The wretched crews, the treason of the foe, And horror of my bloody practice past. Strikes such a terror to my wounded conscience, That, sleep I, wake I, or whatsoever I do, Methinks their ghosts come gaping for revenge, Whom I have slain in reaching for a crown. Clarence complains and crieth for revenge ; My nephews' bloods, Revenge ! revenge ! doth cry ; The headless peers come pressing for revenge ; And every one cries. Let the tyrant die. The sun by day shines hotly for revenge ; The moon by night eclipseth for revenge ; The stars are turn'd to comets for revenge ; The planets change their courses for revenge; The birds sing not, but sorrow for revenge ; The silly lambs sit bleating for revenge ; The screeching raven sits croaking for revenge ; Whole herds of beasts come bellowing for revenge ; And all, yea, .all the world, I think. Appendix 315 Cries for revenge, and nothing but revenge : But to conclude, I have deserv'd revenge. In company I dare not trust my friend ; Being alone, I dread the secret foe ; I doubt my food, lest poison lurk therein, My, bed is uncoth, rest refrains my head. Then such a life I count far worse to be Than thousand deaths unto a damned death : How I was 't death, I said ? who dare attempt my death ? ' Nay, who dare so much as once to think my death ? Though enemies there be that would my body kill, Yet shall they leave a never-dying mind. But you, villains, rebels, traitors as you are, How came the foe in, pressing so near ? Where, where slept the garrison that should 'a beat them back ? Where was our friends to intercept the foe ? All gone, quite fled, his loyalty quite laid a-bed. Then vengeance, mischief, horror with mischance. Wild-fire, with whirlwinds, light upon your heads. That thus betray'd your prince by your untruth ! ' "To such a performance it is evident Shakespeare's Richard could have owed little beyond such straggling hints. Knight justly remarks : ' There is not a trace in the elder play of the charade^' of Shakespeare's Richard : in that play he is a coarse ruffian only — an unintellectual villain. The author has not even had the skill to copy the dramatic narrative of Sir Thomas More in the scene of the arrest of Hastings. It is sufficient for him to make Richard display the brute force of the tyrant. The affected complacency, the mock passion, the bitter sarcasm of the Richard of the historian were left for Shakespeare to imitate and improve.' " The Politics of the Play Mr. Richard Simpson, in his paper on "The Politics of Shak- spere's Historical Plays," read before the New Shakspere Society, 3i6 Appendix Oct. 9, 1874 (published in the TransacHons of the Society for 1874, pp. 396-441), has the following remarks on Richard HI.: — " The drama of the fall of the house of Lancaster is completed by the play of Richard III. The references in this play to the three parts of Henry VI. are so many as to make it impossible to deny the serial character and unity of the whole tetralogy, whatever questions may be raised as to the authorship of parts of it. The whole exhibits the fate of virtuous weakness in the face of un- scrupulous strength, and concludes with the fate of this strength in the face of Providence. Henry VI. perishes by natural causes. The forces which destroy Richard III, are wholly supernatural. Three women are introduced whose curses are inevitable, like those of the Eumenides. Ghosts prophesy the event of a battle. Men's imprecations on themselves are literally fulfilled. Their destiny is made more to depend on their words than their actions ; it is re- moved out of their hands, and placed in those of some unearthly power which hears prayer and judges the earth. As if the lesson of the poet was that there is human remedy where there are ordi- nary human motives, but that for power joined with Machiavellian policy the only remedy is patience dependent on Providence. " Richard III., like King John, commits his last and unpardon- able offence when he slays the right heir. But the poet treats the offences differently : he calls the barons who opposed John rebels ; his moral judgment seems to approve those who placed the first Tudor on the throne. The two cases were placed on equal footing by the opposition writers. ' What disgrace or shame was it,' asks Cardinal Allen, ' for all the chief lords of our country to revolt from King John and to deny him aid, until he returned to the See Apos- tolic ? ... or for the English nobility, and specially for the re- nowned Stanley [he is defending Sir William Stanley], to revolt from King Richard the tyrant, and to yield himself and his charge to Henry VII. ?' The difference seems to be, that John's barons would have sold England to the French King. Stanley, in spite of the Breton auxiliaries of the Tudor, preserved the crown to a Appendix 317 native dynasty. It is to be noted, too, that as the poet places his loudest denunciations of Papal usurpations in the mouth of John, who was just about to become the Pope's ' man,' so does he put his most solemn warning against traitors in the mouth of the successful rebel. But treason in his mind is not against the crowned head, it is against the country : — " ' Abate the edge of traitors, gracious Lord, That would reduce these bloody times again, . . . That would with treason wound this fair land's peace.' "In the composition of this play the dangers of a disputed succession were before Shakspere's eyes. The third scene of the second act exhibits the evils incident on the decease of a prince when the succession is doubtful or belongs to a child. " In Richard III. also the poet gave what he long left as a final picture of the absolutism of the crown, as it had been developed by the civil wars. By the extinction of the old baronage it had lost the counterpoise which balanced it. Edward IV. surrounded him- self with new peers, relations of his wife, through whom he governed. Richard III. cut all these off, destroyed what remained of the older nobles, and declared his intention of doing every thing for himself, and using nothing but unrespective boys for his ministers. He issues his commands without pretence of legality. His merits as a legislator are entirely put out of sight by the poet. He makes him- self, to use Raleigh's words, * not only an absolute monarch like unto the sovereigns of England and France, but a Turk to tread under his feet all natural and fundamental laws.' Absolutism was, to the eyes of politicians of those days, a legal state of things. Tyranny was only the vicious personal aberration of the rightful absolute prince. Raleigh similarly lamented the cessation of vil- lenage : ' Since slaves were made free, which were of great use and service, there are grown up a rabble of rogues, cutpurses, and other like trades, slaves in nature though ttot in laiu.'' " 3i8 Appendix The Time-Analysis of the Play This is summed up by Mr. P. A. Daniel ( Trans, of New Shaks. Soc. 1877-79, p. 336) as follows: — *' Time of this play eleven days represented on the stage ; with intervals. Total dramatic time within one month (?). Day I. Act I. so. i. and ii. Interval ; for the funeral and the subsequent marriage of Richard with the Lady Anne. The interval, however, must be short. Be- sides Richard's ' Clarence hath not another day to live ' of sc. i., note also the reference in I. iii. 91 to Hastings' late imprisonment. Day 2. Act I. sc. iii. and iv. Act II. sc. i. and ii. " 3. Act II. sc. iii. Interval ; for the journey to Ludlow. 4. Act II. sc. iv. 5. Act III. sc. i. 6. Act III. sc. ii.-vii. 7. Act IV. sc. i. 8. Act IV. sc. ii.i-v. Interval ; Richard's march to Salisbury. Day 9. Act V. sc. i. Interval ; Richard's march from Salisbury to Leicester. Day 10. Act V. sc. ii.^ and first half of sc. iii. " II. Act V. second half of sc. iii. and sc. iv. and v. 1 " The early hour at which this scene closes (' upon the stroke of ten '), and the fact that it is after the coronation — for Anne is not pres- ent, and Stanley's business is to report the flight of Dorset — suggest the commencement of a new day with this scene ; but as Dorset's flight could not be long concealed from Richard, we can scarcely imagine the time to be later than the morrow of Act IV. sc. i." 2 " Richmond hears that Richard now lies near Leicester, ' one day's march ' from Tamworth, and thither he proceeds to join battle with him. Here, as the author gives us two definite points, with the time necessary Appendix 319 With regard to sc. iii. of Act IV. Mr. Daniel asks: "The time of this scene ? Well, just before supper-time, about five or six o'clock P.M. On the same day as the preceding scene ? It should be if Tyrrel kept his promise to a king not prone to let his purpose ccol. Then the young princes were abed early in the afternoon. Not im- possible ; but the reader must decide for himself on the probabili- ties of the case. I take it to be the same day, notwithstanding the astounding celerity of the march of events of which we gain intel- ligence when Tyrrel goes off to medicate, between this and after- supper time, how the King may do him good. We learn that between this time and ten in the morning Richard has pent up the son of Clarence close ; that he has matched the daughter (a mere child on the morning of yesterday) in a mean marriage; that 'Anne, my wife, hath bid the world good night,' and that being now free, he is about to go, ' a jolly thriving wooer,' to young Elizabeth, and so prevent the aims of Breton Richmond in that quarter ! And this is not all ; for Catesby comes in with the intelligence that Ely has fled to Richmond, and that Buckingham — here at ten this morning for traversing the space between them, a little digression may be allow- able, with the view of ascertaining the lapse of time — if any — supposed by the plot of the drama between our Days 8 and lo. From Tamworth to Leicester is ' one day's march ' ; the distance on the map, in a straight line, is 24 miles. Calculated at this rate, Richmond has marched from Milford to Tamworth — 160 miles = six to seven days. Richard has marched from London to Salisbury, and from Salisbury to Leicester — 190 miles = seven to eight da3's. Are we to distribute this time between the two last intervals that I have doubtfully marked, or are we to go to history, where we find that Richmond landed at Milford Haven on the 7th August, 1485, and fought the battle of Bosworth Field on the 22d of the same month ? Or are we to be guided by the instances of the an- nihilation of time and space which this play elsewhere affords us ? It seems a fruitless inquiry, but it at any rate leads to the conclusion that the author himself actually, if not designedly, put aside all such con- siderations when constructing the plots of his dramas." 320 Appendix — is in the field, back'd with the hardy Welshmen, and still his power increaseth ! " Richard ends the scene, determining to make instant prepa- rations to put down Buckingham's rebellion. Does he wait for supper? I think not. If Buckingham can fly from London to Brecknock (150 miles), levy an army there, and let the news of his proceedings fly back to London all in the course of a few hours, Richard may surely muster up his men in ten minutes. He. does so. " I need hardly say that it is Tyrrel's business which forces sc. ii. and iii. of Act IV. into one day; if we could throw him over, or suppose him to have taken a week or a month in which to fulfil his murderous engagement, so much time as we allow him might be placed as an interval between these two scenes ; but the dramatist fixes his time, and in our reckoning I presume we are bound to ac- cept the definite before the indefinite. Scenes ii. and iii. being thus brought together, scenes iv. and v. join them as a matter of course." The Historic Dates of the Play The dead body of Henry VI. exposed to public view in St. Paul's, 22d May, 1471. Marriage of Richard with Anne, 1472. Death of Clarence, beginning of 1478. Death of Edward IV., 9th April, 1483. Rivers and Grey arrested, 30th April, 1483. Hastings exe- cuted, 13th June, 1483. Rivers, Grey, Vaughan, and Hawes exe- cuted, 15th June, 1483. Buckingham harangues the citizens in Guildhall, 24th June, 1483. I,ord Mayor and citizens offer Richard the crown, 25th June ; he is declared King at Westminster Hall, 26th June; and crowned, 6th July, 1483. Buckingham executed, October, 1483. Death of Queen Anne, i6th March, 1485. Henry VII. lands at Milford Haven, 7th August, 1485. Battle of Bosworth Field, 22d August, 1485 (Daniel). Appendix 321 List of Characters in the Play The numbers in parentheses indicate the lines the characters have in each scene. King Edward : ii. i (64). Whole no. 64. Prince Edward : iii. i (43) ; v. 3 (8). Whole no. 51. Duke of York : \\. ^{\(i); iii. 1(23); v. 3 (8). Whole no. 47. i\ Clarence : i. I (22), 4(142); v. 3 (10). Whole no 174^^^,,-^ i'' ' Gloster (^Richard III?) : i. i (125), 2 (154), 3 (i25);/ii.< i (56), 4(32), 5 (69), 7 (73); iv. 2 (83), 3 (26), 4 (198); V. 3 (154), 4(6). Whole no. 1161. , \ Boy {son of Clarence) : ii. 2 (21). Whole no. 21. Richmond : v. 2 (19), 3 (85), 5 (32). Whole no. 136. Cardinal : iii. I (9). Whole no. 9. Archbishop: ii. 4(12). Whole no. 12. Bishop of Ely : iii. 4 (7). Whole no. 7. Buckinghain : i. 3(12); ii. 1(12), 2.{2.\)\ iii. 1(58), 2(7), 4(12), 5(27), 7(156); iv. 2(29); V. 1(27), 3(io)- Whole no, 374. Norfolk: v. 3 (10). Whole no. 10. Surrey : v. 3 (i). Whole no. i. Rivers: i. 3(18); ii. 1(4), 2(12); iii. 3(17); v. 3(4). Whole no. 55. Dorset : i. 3 (3); ii. I (4), 2 (7); iv. I (i). Whole no. 15. Grey: i, 3 (6) ; iii. 3 (4) ; v. 3 (3). Whole no. 13. Oxford: v. 2 (2). Whole no. 2. Hastings: i. 1(10), 3(5); ii. 1(3), 2(1); iii. 1(6), 2(70), 4 (49) ; V. 3 (5). Whole no. 149. Stanley: i. 3 (8) ; ii- i (s); i"- 2 (13), 4 (8); iv. i (11), 2 (3), 4 (17), 5 (12); V. 3 (21), 5 (9). WTiole no. 107. Lovel: iii. 4(1), 5 (2). Whole no. 3. Vaughan: iii. 3 (i); v. 3 (4). Whole no. 5. Ratcliff: iii. 3 (3), 4 (2); iv. 4 (10); v. 3 (15). Whole no. 30. RICHARD III. — 21 322 Appendix Catesby: i. 3(2); iii. 1(5), 2(16), 7(14); iv. 2(2), 3(4), 4(8); V. 3 (4), 4 (7). Whole no. 62. Tyrrel : iv. 2 (8), 3 (29). Whole no. -yi- Blount: v. 2 (2), 3 (6). Whole no. 8. Herbert: v. 2 (i). Whole no. I. Brakenbicry : i. i (8), 4 (25); iv. I (6). Whole no. 39. Urswick : iv. 5 (8). Whole no. 8. Priest: iii. 2 (i). Whole no. I. Mayor : iii. I (i), 5 (11), 7 (5). Whole no. 17. Sheriff: v. j (2). Whole no. 2. Gentleman : i. 2 (2). Whole no. 2. i^/ Murderer : i. 3 (7), 4 (59). Whole no. 66. 2d Murderer : i. 4(69). Whole no. 69. \st Citizen: ii. 3 (8). Whole no. 8. 2(f Citizen: ii. 3(13). Whole no. 13. 3^ Citizen: ii. 3 (28). Whole no. 28. Pursuivant : iii. 2 (3). Whole no. 3. Scrivener : iii. 6 (14). Whole no. 14. \st Messenger : ii. 4 (9) ; iii. 2 (15) ; iv. 4 (5) ; v. 3 (l). W^hole no. 30. 2d Messenger : iv. 4 (3) . Whole no. 3. T^d Messenger : iv. 4(7). Whole no. 7. 4//? Messenger : iv. 4 (10). Whole no. 10. Ghost of Henry VI.: v. 3 (9). W^hole no. 9. 6^/io^/ of Prince Edward V. : v. 3 (8). Whole no. 8. Page: iv. 2 (6). Whole no. 6. Lords: v. 3 (3). Whole no. 3. ^^ Another": iii. 7(1). Whole no. i, Queeji Elizabeth: i. 3(50); ii. 1(7), 2(21), 4(15); iv. 1(32), 4(149). Whole no, 274. Queen Margaret: i. 3 (124); iv. 4 (94). Whole no. 218. Duchess of York: ii. 2 (44), 4 (26) ; iv. I (16), 4 (54). Whole no. 140. Lady Anne : i. 2(118); iv. I (39); v. 3(8). Whole no. 165. Appendix ^'^3 Girl {^Daughter of Clai-ence) : ii. 2 (9). Whole no 9. In the above enumeration, parts of lines are counted as whole lines, making the total in the play greater than it is. The actual number of lines in each scene (Globe edition numbering) is as fol- lows : i. 1(162), 2(263), 3(356), 4(290); ii. 1(140), 2(154), 3(49), 4(73); i"- 1(200), 2(124), 3(25), 4(109), 5(109), 6(14), 7(247); iv. 1(104), 2(126), 3(57), 4(540), 5(20); V. 1(29), 2(24), 3(350, 4(13), 5(40- Whole number in the play, 3620. Richard III. is the longest of the plays, with the exception of Hamlet, which has 3930 lines. Richard himself speaks more lines than any other character in any one play, except Hamlet, who has 1569 lines. Of the characters who appear in more than one play, Henry V., as prince and king, has the most lines, including 616 in I Henry IV., 308 in 2 Henry IV., and 1063 in Henry V., or 1987 in all. Falstaff comes next with 1895 ^^ ^ (7^9 ii^ i Henry IV.y 688 in 2 Henry IV., and 488 in the Merry Wives). INDEX OF WORDS AND PHRASES EXPLAINED a many, 280 abase, 238 abate (= blunt), 310 abjects, 232 abroach, 246 acquaint of, 241 acquit (= acquitted), 310 acquittance (verb), 281 adulterate, 290 advantaging, 295 adventure (verb), 241 advertised (accent), 298 aery, 245 after (imperative), 275 after-supper, 287 a-high, 291 All-Soul's day, 300 all the world to nothing, 238 almost (= hardly), 258, 274 ambling (contemptuous), 229 ancient (= old) , 266, 289 annoy (noun) , 305 anointed body, 305 answer nay and take it, 278 ap (Welsh), 300 apparent ( = manifest) , 274 as (omitted), 253, 267 aspect (accent), 234 at the height, 240 atonement, 239 attainder, 274 aweless, 260 ay me, 260 baited at, 241 barbed, 229 basilisk, 236 battalia, 301 battle (= army), 241, 307 Baynard's Castle, 275 be advised, 253 be at charges for, 239 beads, 278 beaver (= helmet), 303 bedashed, 236 beholding (= beholden), 254, 265 belike, 231, 240 bend their power, 300 betide, 236, 239, 261 bettering, 292 beweep, 246 bid (from bide) , 295 bigamy, 280 Blue Boar Inn, 310 Blunt, Sir James, 301 bobbed, 308 Bona, 280 bond (figurative), 290 book (= table-book), 274 boot, 290, 307 bottled spider, 245, 291 Bouchier, Cardinal, 261 bought and sold, 308 bowels of the land, 301 Brandon, Sir William, 302 braved, 307 breathing-while, 240 Brecknock, 285 Breton Richmond, 287 briganders, 217 brook it ill, 239 bruising irons, 304 bulk (= chest), 247 bunch-backed, 245 buried (trisyllable), 253 bushment, 219 bustle (= be busy), 233, 307 but, 243 by (omitted), 279 by Saint Paul, 233 by substitute, 280 cacodsemon, 242 caitiff (feminine), 291 Camera Regis, 261 cancel his bond of life, 290 capable, 266 careful (= full of care), 240 carnal (= bloodthirsty) , 290 censures (= opinions) , 257 ceremonies, 262 chair (= throne), 298 chamber (= London) , 261 change (= caprice), 275 characters (play upon) , 263 checked, 279 cheerfully and smooth, 272 Chertsey, 234 chiefest, 307 childish-foolish, 242 Christian (trisyllable), 274 cited up, 247 Clarence', 266 clean (= completely) , 260 close (= secret), 233, 283 closure, 270 cloudy (of persons), 255 cock-shut time, 303 cog (= deceive), 240 colder, 299 common (verb), 210 compact (accent), 256 competitors, 299 complete (accent), 293 complots (accent), 266 concluded, 239 condition (= disposition), 292 conduct (= escort), 231 consequence, 283 content (= pay), 269 contract (accent), 277 contract (= contracted), 280 convenient (= suitable), 297 conversation, 274 2:l6 Index of Words and Phrases convict (= convicted) , 249 1 costard, 249 Countess Richmond, 239 cousin (= nephew), 261 cousins (= grandchil- dren), 254 cried on (= cried out) , 306 Crosby House, 237, 266 cross-row, 231 cry thee mercy, 245, 255, 299, 306 cue, 271 curst, 235 dally (= trifle), 251 dangerous success, 294 daring an opposite, 309 dead-killing, 282 deal upon, 284 dear (intensive), 250, 255 dearest (=most urgent), 301 declension, 280 decline, 29T defend (= forbid), 278, 280 demise, 295 denier, 239 deny (= refuse) , 262, 309 descant (= comment), 230 descant (=in music), 277 determined, 239 determined respite, 300 devoted (= pious), 234 Dickon, 308 died for hope, 305 diffused, 235 dining with Duke Hum- phrey, 292 disgracious, 279, 292 dissembling, 229 dissentious, 240 distraught, 273 divided councils, 266 Doctor Shaw, 276 done salutation, 305 doomsday, 300 draught, 284 duck with French nods, 240 dugs, 254 effect (= execution) , 236 effeminate, 280 egally, 281 elvish-marked, 243 ^mbracements, 251 empery, 279 enacts (= performs), 309 enforced (= forced) , 274 enforcement, 277, 281 engross (= make gross) , 278 ensuing (= coming), 258 entreat (= treat), 292 envious (= malicious), 239 erroneous (personal), 249 espials, 227 evidence (= witness), 249 evil diet, 233 excellent, 290 except, 306 exclaim on, 270 exclaims (noun), 235, 292 exercise, 269 exhale (= draw out) , 235 expedient, 237 expiate (= finished), 270 explorators, 227 extreme (accent), 274, 292 factious for, 241, 251 fair befall thee, 245, 274 faithful, 247 fall (transitive), 305 fear (= fear for) , 233 fear (reflexive), 236 fearful, 229, 287, 295 fearfuli'st, 273 feature (= beauty), 229 fet, 256 fire-new, 245 flaky, 304 fleeting (= inconstant) , 247 fleshed, 286 flourish (= varnish), 245 foil, 306 fond (= foolish), 272 fondly, 279 foot-cloth horse, 272 for (= because), 231, 287 foreward, 307 forfeit, 253 formal Vice, Iniquity, 263 forth of, 246, 292 franked up, 246, 299 Friar Penker, 276 from (play upon), 295 fulsome, 305 gallant-springing, 250 galled eyes, 290 garish, 291 garland (= crown) , 267 gentle villain, 242 George, 296 giddy (= excitable) , 258 go current from suspicion, ^253 God he knows, 261 God help the while! 258 God I pray him, 243 good world the while, 277 graced (= blessed), 292 gracious (trisyllable), 292 graft (participle), 279 gramercy, 269 gratulate, 281 grim-visaged, 229 gross (= dull) , 277 grossness of this age, 262 ground (in music), 277 had been remembered, 259 hap (= fortune), 234, 240 hatches (= deck), 247 hats (= heads ?), 268 haught, 258 have with you, 268 heap (of persons), 252 hearken after, 231 heaven (plural), 243 hell (plural), 290 helpless (= unavailing), 233 hereafter (adjective), 297 Hertford West, 236 heyday, 298 high'st, 305 hilts (= hilt), 249 his (= its), 296 hoised, 299 Holborn, 271 holp, 236, 290 holy humour, 248 holy rood, 268 honey (adjective), 282 hour (dissyllable), 282 how chance, 285 hull (verb), 297 Humphrey Hour, 292 I wis, 241 idea (= image) , 277 if (omitted), 274, 279 images (= children), 254 impatience (metre) , 254 2^2 Index of Words and Phrases 327 importune (accent), 254 in (=into), 239, 241, 279 289, 301, 306 in (= upon?), 248 in all post, 275 in good time, 251, 261 in quarrel of, 250 in safeguard of, 306 in thought, 277 incapable, 254 incensed, 266 inclusive verge, 282 index (= prelude) , 257, 291 induction, 287 inductions dangerous, 230 infer (= bring in), 275, 277, 295, 308 insinuate with, 248 instance (= cause), 267 instinct (accent), 258 intelligencer, 290 intend (= pretend), 274, interior (= inward) , 240 invocate, 233 inward with, 271 irons (= weapons), 304 iron-witted, 283 is all things, etc., 271 Jack, 285 jet, 260 jumpeth (= agrees), 261 just (= honest), 230 jut, 260 keeps (= stays with) , 302 key-cold, 233 labour (== work for) , 250 Lady Lucy, 277 lag (= late), 253 lap (=wrap), 253 leads (— roof ) , 278 Leicester, 310 leisure, 304, 306 lessoned, 250 let blood, are, 266 Lethe, 295 letting (= forbearing), 210 level (= aim), 292 lewd (= vile) , 240 libels, 230 lie (in prison), 232 lie in the throat, 235 lighted, 273 lightly (= commonly) , 265 lights burn blue, the, 305 like as, 281 likes (= pleases), 272 likes of it, 296 limit (= appoint), 302 livelihood, 272 living death, 236 love-bed, 278 Lovel (name of dog), 244 Ludlow, 256 luxury (=lust), 275 majestical, 279 make (=do), 242, 298 make the period to, 245 manner person, 276 map (= picture), 260 Margaret of Anjou, 287 marvellous (adverb), 239 me seemeth, 256 mean (= means), 241 measures (= dances), 229 meetest, 275 melancholy, 303 Mercury, 287 mere (= absolute), 281 . merits (= demerits), 226 methinks, 263 mettle, 295 mewed up, 230, 233, 242 milk-sop, 308 millstones (from the eyes), 246, 250 miscarry (=die), 239 misdoubt, 268 model (= outline) , 302 moe, 299 moiety, 238, 255 moralize, 265 mortal living, 289 mortal staring, 304 Morton, 271, 287 move our patience, 245 much-what, 210 muse (= wonder), 246 my (objective), 245 new-delivered, 232 nice, 280 niece (= granddaughter) , 281 no marvel though, 248 noble (coin), 240 nought (spelling), 232 novice (= youth), 250 obdurate (accent), 246, 262 obsequiously, 233 o'erworn, 232 of any place, 262 opposite (= opponent), 309. opposite (= opposed), 297 opposite with, 255 or (= before), 216 orient pearl, 295 other self, 257 overblown, 260 overgo (= exceed), 255 overweening, 308 owed (owned), 292 Oxford, Earl of, 301 pageant (= dumb-show), 291 pains (= labours), 241 parcelled, 255 parlous, 259, 266 part (= depart), 251 party (= side), 242, 293, 299 passing (adverb), 232 patience (trisyllable), 281 patient (trisyllable) , 242 pattern (= masterpiece) , 235 Paul's, 276 pawned (= pledged), 284 peevish (= silly), 261, 284, 297 peize, 304 percase, 218 perforce, 261 period (= completion), 251 pew-fellow, 290 pilled, 210, 242 piping, 229 pitchers have ears, 259 plainest harmless, 274 please (impersonal), 256, 268 pleaseth (impersonal), 298 pluck on, 284 plucked, 253, 262 Pomfret, 269 power (= army), 297 prayers (dissyllable), 254, 286, 293 precedent (= first draft) , 276 328 Index of Words and Phrases prefer (= promote) , 284 presentation, 291 prevailed on, 232 prime (= first), 286 prodigious, 234 prolonged (= put off ), 271 promotions (metre), 240 proof (= armour), 306 proof (= experience), 259 proper (= handsome) , 239 puissance (concrete), 307 puissant (dissyllable), 297 punched, 305 pursuivant, 268 quest (= inquest) , 249 quick, 235, 239, 243, 296 quicken, 295 quit (= requite), 289, 306 rag (personal), 244 rased, 215, 267 reason (=talk), 249, 258, 299 receive the sacrament, 250 record (accent), 263, 289, 308 recorder (accent) , 277 recure, 279 redoubted, 299 reduce (= bring back) , 255, 310 re-edified, 262 regiment, 302 remorse (= pity), 280, 286 remorseful, 236 replenished, 286 repose you, 262 resolve (= satisfy), 283, 285, 300 respect (= care for), 246 respects (= motives), 280 restrain, 308 retailed (= retold) , 263 revenue, 279 reverent, 289 Rice ap Thomas, 300 right for right, 289 rood (= cross), 268, 292 Rougemont, 285 rounding, 210, 218, 222 royalize, 241 runagate, 298 runaways, 308 ruthful, 286 sacrament (=oath), 250, 310 Saint George to boot ! 307 sanctuary, 260 scalh (=harm), 246 scelerate, 226 scene (figurative), 291 scorns (noun), 243, 266 scrivener, 276 seldom comes the better, 257 sely, 224 seniory, 289 senseless-obstinate, 262 selves (= waits on), 293 several (= separate), 268, 305 shamefast, 248 sharp-provided, 266 shortly (trisyllable?), 297 shouldered in, 279 shrift, 273 shriving-work, 269 sights, 281 silken (= effeminate) , 240 Sir (of priests), 269 sit about, 266 slave of nature, 244 slower (= serious), 236 slug, 261 smooth (= flatter), 236, 240 smooth-faced, 310 so (omitted), 236 so (= well), 293, 304 solace (intransitive), 258 sometime (=once), 295 sop, 249 sort (= company), 308 sort (= find), 257 sort (= ordain), 258 sour (= morose), 247 sparingly, 275 spleen (= ardour), 309 spleen (=hate), 260 splintered, 255 spurn at, 249 spurn upon, 235 stalled, 243 stands me upon, it, 284 Stanley, 239 statuas, 218 staves (= lances) , 277, 303, 309 stealing, 280 still (= constantly), 254, 258, 267 still (= continual), 294 still-lasting, 295 stout-resolved, 246 strength (= army), 297 stumbling, 273 success (= issue), 294 sun (play upon), 180 suspects (noun), 241 swelling (= angry), 252 take order, 276, 283, 299 tall (= stout), 248 Tamworth, 301 tear-falling, 284 teen, 282 tell the clock, 307 temper (= mould), 231 tender (= regard), 230, 261 tetchy, 292 Tewkesbury, 238 think'st best, it, 262 thrall (= slave) , 282 tidings (number) , 286 timeless (= untimely), 236 to himward, 221 to the death, 267 toad (venomous), 236 too late (= too lately) , 265 too late of, 275 touch (= touchstone) , 283 toys (= fancies), 231 traditional, 262 triumphing (accent), 273 troubled thoughts, 304 truth (= honesty), 268 turn (= return), 293 type (= badge), 294 Tyrrel, 284 unavoided, 293 unblown, 289 unfashionable (adverb), 229 ungoverned, 297 ungracious, 254 unhappiness, 234 unlooked, 243 unmannered, 235 unmeritable, 279 unrecuring, 279 unrespective, 283 untainted, 276 unvalued, 247 upon his party, 267, 299 Index of Words and Phrases 329 Urswick, Sir Christopher, 299 vantage, 277 vaunts (intransitive) , 307 verge (= circle) , 282 Vice, 263 victress, 295 wan- hope, 225 wants but nomination, 271 ward (= guard), 306 warn (= summon), 239 watch (= watch-light), 303 watery moon, 255 wealth (= weal), 210 weigh lightly, 266 well advised, 246, 299 well struck in years, 232 well-spoken, 230, 246 Welshman, 298 were best, 231, 295 what (= who), 249 what (= why), 298 where be, etc , 291 which (=whom), 300 whisper (transitive), 293 White Surrey, 303 White-friars, 237 white-livered, 298 windows (= eyelids), 305 windows (metaphor), 233 windy attorneys, 292 with (= by), 287 withal, 278 witty (= cunning), 283 Woodeville, 231 ,wot, 258 wot you what ? 268 wrack, 236 wretched (= hateful), 301 zealous (= pious), 278 zounds. 248 ROLFE'S ENGLISH CLASSICS Designed for Use in High Schools and Other Secondary Schools Edited by WILLIAM J. ROLFE, Litt.D. Formerly Head Master, High School, Cambridge, Mass. Uniform Flexible Cloth, 12mo. Illustrated. Each, 56 Cents Browning^s Select Poems Twenty Poems (including "Pippa Passes"), with Introduction, Life of Browning, Chronological Table of His Works, List of Books useful in studying them. Critical Comments, and Notes. Browningfs Select Dramas Containing " A Blot in the 'Scutcheon," " Colombe's Birthday," and "A Soul's Tragedy " — with Introduction, Critical Comments, and Notes. Goldsmith's Select Poems " The Traveller," " The Deserted Village," and " Retaliation," with Life of Goldsmith, Recollections and Criticisms by Thackeray, Coleman the Younger, Campbell, Forster, and Irving, and Notes. Gray's Select Poem.s The "Elegy," "The Bard," "The Progress of Poesy," and other Poems, with Life of Gray, William Howitt's Description of Stoke- Pogis, and historical, critical, and explanatory Notes. Macattlay's Lays of Ancient Rome With the Author's Preface and Introductions, Criticisms by John Stuart Mill, Henry Morley, " Christopher North,'' and others, historical and explanatory Notes, and copious Illustrations. Milton's Minor Poems Containing all of Milton's Minor Poems except the Translations, with biographical and critical Introductions, and historical and ex- planatory Notes. "Wordsworth's Select Poems Seventy-one Poems, with Life, Criticisms from Matthew Arnold, R. H. Hutton, Principal Shairp, J. R. Lowell, and Papers of the Wordsworth Society, and very full Notes. Illustrated by Abbey, Parsons, and other eminent artists. Copies will be sent, prepaid, on receipt of the price. AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY NEW YORK CINCINNATI CHICAGO (5.9$) American Literature By MILDRED CABELL WATKINS Flexible cloth, 18mo, 224 pages . . Price 35 cents The eminently practical character of this work will at once commend it to all who are interested in forming and guiding the literary tastes of the young, and especially to teachers who have long felt the need of a satisfactory text- book in American literature which will give pupils a just appreciation of its character and worth as compared with the literature of other countries. In this convenient volume the story of American literature is told to young Americans in a manner which is at once brief, simple, graceful, and, at the same time, impressive and intelligible. The marked features and characteristics of this work may be stated as follows: Due prominence is given to the works of the real makers of our American literature. All the leading authors are grouped in systematic order and classes. A brief summary is appended to each chapter to aid the memory in fixing the salient facts of the narrative. Numerous select extracts from our greatest writers are given in their proper connection. Copies sent, prepaid, on receipt of the price. American Book Company NEW YORK ♦ CINCINNATI ♦ CHICAGO C 59 t COMPOSITION AND RHETORIC Buehler's Practical Exercises in English . . . $0.50 By Huber Gray Buehler, Master in English, Hotch- kiss School, Lakeville, Conn. Butler's School English $0.75 By George P. Butler, formerly English Master, Lawrenceville (N. J.) School. Hill's Beginnings of Rhetoric and Composition $1.25 Foundations of Rhetoric i.oo Principles of Rhetoric 1.20 By Adams Sherman Hill, Boylston Professor of Rhetoric and Oratory, Harvard University. Hill's Elements of Rhetoric and Composition $1.00 By David J. Hill, LL.D., U. S. Minister to Switzer- land, formerly President <. f the University of Rochester. Maxwell and Johnston's School Composition $0.50 By Wm. H. Maxwell, M.A., Ph.D., LL.D., City Superintendent of Schools, New York City, and Emma L. Johnston, A.B., Principal of Public School No. 140. Brooklyn. Maxwell and Smith's Writing in English . . . $0.75 By William H.Maxwell, M.A., Ph.D., LL.D., City Superintendent of Schools, New York City, and George J. Smith, M.A., Ph.D., Member of the Board of Examiners, New York City. Quackenbos's Practical Rhetoric $1.00 By John Duncan Quackenbos, A.M.,M.D., Professor Emeritus of Rhetoric, Columbia College. Waddy's Elements of Composition and Rhetoric $1.00 By Virginia Waddy, Richmond (Va.) High School. AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY [S. 85] ENGLISH LITERATURE BlaisdelPs First Steps with American and British Authors. Revised . $0.90 Brockets English Literature. Revised. (Johnson) .• . .35 Cathcart's Literary Reader .... 1.15 Halleck's History of English Literature 1.25 Irving's Sketch Book — Selections : Regents' Edition (Benjamin) ... .50 Johnson's Elements of Literary Criticism .80 Johnson's Outline History of English and American Literature 1.25 Johnson's Forms of English Poetry . i.oo Koopman's Mastery of Books ... .90 Matthews' Introduction to American Literature i.oo McNeill and Lynch's Introductory Lessons in English Literature i.oo Painter's Poets of the South ... .60 Phillips's English Literature — 2 vols., each 2.00 Porter and Clarke'sShakespeare Studies — Macbeth .56 Shaw-Backus's Outlines of Literature: English and American 1.25 Swinton's Studies in English Literature 1.20 Watkins's American Literature ... .35 Rolfe's Edition of Shakespeare — 40 vols., each .56 Gateway Series of English Texts — 18 vols. General Editor, Henry van Dyke. The English texts which are required for entrance to college, edited by eminent authorities and presented in a clear, interest- ing, and helpful form. Eclectic English Classics — 44 vols. AMERICAN BOOK COMPANY ts.89] ,•1^^ x-io-ft ■4.N * ^FooWn'**^* 'T'^ ^oV" « C^ * ^9^ ^.nc,^' 'h^ ^°-n^^ :i5°^ 1^ ■* • • • ^vj ^-^ o • * * /V V J, ^^**'"^* <^ .>.V^\ U^^^<^ ,^'v \/ .»/bl-, ^. <^ L^*^.-: ♦ A* V^ — * "v*